Wendy
nodded her head in agreement. She wanted the pleasure, the sweet
orgasm that was awaiting her.
Moral
restraint was no longer a factor. As Wendy kneaded her breast,
Samantha did her best to mimic Wendy’s action with her right
hand
on
Wendy’s right tit,
and began to press her own bosom into Wendy’s back more.
She also leaned in and began
a
trial of soft kisses from Wendy’s ear onto
her
bare shoulder. She
cooed in Wendy’s ear, “Imagine if you were doing this
with more women watching you. Wouldn’t that be exciting? That
would really turn you on, wouldn’t it?”
“Hmmmm,”
was Wendy’s distracted reply, while absorbing Samantha’s
suggestion as a truth.
“Isn’t
masturbation better with another woman helping you? It’s much
better to have another pretty girl or woman touching you, isn’t
it? Feeling you up exactly where you want to be touched...”
Wendy’s response was similar to her previous one.
Wendy
could feel the intense heat of lust emanate from her womanhood,
every
sexual nerve on fire, her cunt aching for release, moist and
pulsating with the desire for carnal sex.
Unable to resist, Wendy
slipped
her
free right
hand
back
into her panties. Shortly, she was working a finger
in and out of her horny fuck hole,
seeking to
quell the lust consuming her soul.
What
she was doing felt incredible. How could the sensations she was
feeling be wrong? At this moment,
as if a ray of enlightenment had been shot to her by Goddess, Wendy
realized that the pleasures of the flesh were divine,
reflecting
beautiful natural human urges
that should not be denied nor
suppressed, especially
due to some foolish belief that they were wrong. Wendy had no
intention
to
deny herself,
or to stop,
until she achieved the
high she
desired.
Wendy’s
arousal was completely obvious to Evie and Samantha, and would have
been to anyone else observing her, as well, from, among other things,
the
way Wendy was breathing
heavily, was
groping her left breast
vigorously, and was working
her right hand
over her pussy,
the trembling of her body, and the delirious
moans of pleasure spewing from her mouth. One would have to be
totally oblivious to
conclude that Wendy was pleasuring herself, with an equal assist from
Samantha, and not enjoying it.
Evie and Samantha
smiled at each other wickedly, acknowledging
to one another that their plan to lure Wendy
further along the path Hecate had mapped out for her was working out
very nicely.
“Good...good,
Wendy. You’re doing absolutely great,”
Samantha whispered seductively as
she continued to feel up Wendy’s right breast, mimicking
Wendy’s actions on her own left breast.
Wendy
only moaned in response.
“Tell
me, Wendy,” Evie asked softly, “what--or
who--are
you fantasizing about? Who’s getting my sweet daughter all hot
and bothered?”
She
leaned forward
over
Wendy
to kiss Samantha with Wendy sandwiched between the two,
further
fueling the sexuality in the room. “What
girl--or woman--is getting you so turned on? Tell
your mother what delightful,
wicked
images
are in
that naughty head of yours.”
“Don’t
forget about me,
sweetie,
“Samantha cooed into
Wendy’s ear.
“Tell
me what gets your fuck hole hot and steamy,
too!”
The
stripper emphasized the words “fuck hole” in a
particularly suggestive, sultry manner. “It’s me, isn’t
it?” Samantha whispered into the blonde’s ear, as she
tugged explosively on the nipple in her hand.
“Oh!
Ohhh, Samantha,” Wendy whispered back breathlessly, “Yes…
It’s...it’s you...ooo...”
“Good.
I like to hear that. But I knew that already. You are really
bonkers for me, aren’t you?”
“...yes...yes,
Samantha… I am…”
“I
know why you like me so much. Do you?”
“Because
you’re…you’re really pretty…”
“Thank
you. But there’s more to it than that, isn’t there?”
“...um…”
“You
like my body...my lesbian body… It turns you on…”
“...yes…
I do… I love your sexy body…”
“...because
you’re a lesbian, Wendy...a passionate, helplessly homosexual,
randy lesbian girl… You love girls…”
……….
Is she right?…….. Am I really becoming a lesbian? ………
I think I’m still straight… Wendy remembered the
necklace she was wearing. Oh, yeah… I’m supposed to
think like a lesbian… It’s okay to feel like a
lesbian...and act like one...for now… Wendy felt relief
that she had found justification to suppress, for the time being, the
resistance within herself to lesbianism which she had thought she
should be feeling, and to surrender a little more to her surging
sapphic emotions. I don’t mind Samantha thinking of me as a
lesbian… In fact...I like it... but...to be honest...I...I do
love some girls, at least...girls like Samantha… Right now...I
am a lesbian……... I love girls……..
“And
it’s
because I’m a slut...isn’t it? You
like sluts. Slutty lesbian girls turn you on.”
“I...uh…”
A quick moment’s reflection told Wendy that Samantha had her
figured out correctly. “Yes……
I...I like slutty girls...like you...”
“I’m
the
kind of slut you want to be with…and
I’m
the kind of slut you want to be...”
“.........yes…....”
“I’ll
help you… I’ll help you to become just like me. Would
you like that?”
“....yes…
I...I think so…”
“You
like playing with your pussy, don’t you, Wendy?” Samantha
cooed into Wendy’s ear. “It’d be even better if
another girl’s hand helped. Would you like me to help you play
with your hot pussy, Wendy?” Wendy felt Samantha’s free
left hand slide into the waistband of her panties, waiting there for
Wendy to give it the green light. “It’s better if another
girl plays with you. Especially
if it’s me, hmmm?”
Wendy
did want that, and she didn’t. Even though she
knew she was committed to feeling, behaving, and living like a
lesbian to win the heart of Lauren, she
didn’t want to get more involved with these women than she had
to. She
knew she may have already gone a little too far
already. She reminded herself once again that she
didn’t come here tonight for this...
Yet...on the other hand...she
was just doing what she, as the lesbian girl she was
being right now, was supposed to do...and...she
didn’t feel any guilt about what was happening.
It was just all good and natural and nice. Plus, this wasn’t
just anyone offering to help her get off... It was her beloved
crush...a hot porn star!… How fantastic was that?! …
And
what
would it hurt if another hand joined her own?……
Yes… That would be nicer...much
nicer…
Anyway, she
had already had her pussy felt up by other girls before. This would
not be the first time another girl had touched her cunt. It had
been wonderful before. So why not?
“Okay…”
Samantha
completed her slide into Wendy’s panties, and found her vulva.
The first touch of her porn-star crush’s painted-nailed
fingertips on her young womanhood sent skyrockets through her. “Oh!
Ohhh…” she panted. Then they, by unspoken agreement,
divided up the territory. While Wendy finger-fucked herself in the
lower part of her slit, Samantha pleasured Wendy’s clit and
upper pussy lips. “Ah! Oooooo…” Wendy moaned in
response. Masturbation by another girl’s hand was definitely
better than by hers
own
alone.
“What
if another of your friends were here doing this with you...like your
friend Madelynn?” Wendy, not being in a discriminating
mindset, didn’t ask how Samantha would know about Madelynn.
“Can you imagine her sliding her hands into your panties and
feeling up your pussy, and your tits, like I’m doing?”
Wendy did close her eyes and picture that. It was a delicious
thought. “Would you like that?”
“Ohh,
yeah…”
“You
could make it happen, sweetie. You’ve just got to be
sexier...and more beautiful...and sluttier… Let her know how
you really feel about her...and that you’re ready for
everything with her.” Wendy loved the idea...the
possibility...the vision…
“Or...even
naughtier...just think if I were...your mother! Touching you
like this…” Samantha pulled on Wendy’s right
nipple and her clit simultaneously, then plied them with her pretty
fingernails. The invasive touches and the incestuous proposal made
Wendy’s nipples all the harder and her pussy all the wetter.
“Oh!
Ah!”
“Oh,
wicked Wendy! That turns you on, doesn’t it?!” It did,
indeed. While Wendy felt an impulse to object and to express that
Samantha had gone too far, that she, Wendy, could not agree to think
of her mother as being with her like this, Wendy had no ability to
speak a denial, and the urge quickly faded, drowned in lust. “But
that’s okay. Mothers and daughters should be sexual with each
other...very sexually involved…It’s the best way to show
their love.” Samantha kissed Wendy again on her cheek.
“Mother-daughter love and sex is such a beautiful thing. You
should try incest with your mother some time.” The subliminals
Wendy had just heard made, combined with having previously heard
Cynthia, Lauren, Madeline, and Kayla urge her to consider her mother
as a potential lover, as well as the video she had seen with Madeline
and other brainwashing she had experienced, made it so that the
brunette’s suggestions struck Wendy in this moment, after that
initial impulse to disagree had left her, only as agreeable,
exciting, and natural truths.
“Now,”
the stripper resumed, “there’s someone else,
someone
who’s right here...someone
I know you want… Look at her… She’s beautiful,
isn’t she? And she looks just like your mother. That’s
so hot, isn’t it? Think of her as your mother...that she is
your mother...and...you can have her… That really arouses
you,
doesn’t
it? She turns you on… Look at her body…”
Samantha pulled on the blonde teen’s clit and stroked her pussy
lips harder, eliciting another little gasp and making her focus on
Evie intently.
From
that point on, Wendy ogled the blonde woman’s voluptuous body
freely, her eyes settling again and again on her fiery-red areolae
and nipples peeking out over and
through her
gauzy shelf bra. She told herself that
if this really had been her mother, she would have tried to look
away, out of respect, and she felt,
at some level,
that
she ought to do so now, because this woman was so similar to her
mom...but she couldn’t. Within moments, however, she justified
herself, telling herself that there was no harm in just looking...as
long as she didn’t do
anything
with the beautiful woman...that she realized that she did have great
curiosity to see her mother naked, without understanding where that
desire came from or how long she had had it...and that this was the
next best thing…
So
she would look…and the view was...utterly...spectacular…
Although...within
seconds, Wendy’s mind was making little differentiation between
the
identity of
the woman
in front of her and her
look-alike in Wendy’s home…
This could well be...her…...her
mother…
“Then,
of course,” continued Samantha,
plying Wendy to name a girl who really got to her, who
was in her fantasies, maybe someone she didn’t want to admit
she was really hot for, or even in love with, “there must be
another who gets you all worked up...that you dream about...that
you’d love to have slutty lesbian sex with...whom you’d
love to...fuck…” She punctuated her last
word with a finger plunge between the blonde’s labia. “Uh!
Ahhh!”
The
purpose of this inquiry was to make Wendy look into her soul and find
a specific girl or woman, if there was one, of all the
women and girls Wendy knew or knew of, whether among those introduced
to her by Hecate or others,
who had particularly penetrated her hetero defenses and for
whom she had a special, deep love and a driving, compelling lust, a
lust so consuming that it could bind her long-term into lesbianism,
and to face that love, to face the
pure lesbian affections and deep sapphic desires lying
within her
now, to counterpoise her tendency to ignore and to deny
those feelings, and instead to open her eyes to them, to acknowledge
them, to bring them out in the open, to embrace them, and to relish
them.
The
lust coursing through Wendy’s body caused her mind to lose its
grasp on reality. To
Wendy, at this point, the
smoking hot babe who
was in front of her was her mom and she was also with her
favorite
pornstar,
who was feeling her up, both
urging her to masturbate in front of them while asking what sexual
fantasy was running through her mind,
and what girl she secretly loved
most, wanted
to be
together with most,
to have lesbian sex with
most, and even to mate with, above
others in her life.
Wendy’s resistance at this point was close to nonexistent and,
with Evie flaunting her charms in Wendy’s face
and Samantha’s
hands
stoking
the mounting fire within her, both coaxing her to tune in to the
erotic feelings in her body, and urging her to recognize
and reveal
a
secret beloved, it wouldn’t be long before
the
soul-searching, the view of Evie,
and the play by both her own and Samantha’s hands
would result in one of the most beautiful orgasms, she could tell,
she
would
have ever felt.
“So,
baby
girl,
tell
Mommy
who’s got you all hot and bothered?” Wendy’s
urge was to blurt out what she was feeling strongly in this moment:
You!!!
But
that struck her as an unseemly thing to do with a woman who more or
less was her mother, her senses and emotions were telling her, so she
did not.
Instead,
she closed her eyes and immediately another female appeared in her
mind’s eye, a beauty who had been on her mind and in her heart
and emotions preeminently for weeks, around whom her lusts had been
swirling almost constantly, who indeed had been the focus of many of
her dreams and fantasies. Wendy
recalled several of the romantic and sexual firsts to
which this
girl had introduced her, such as her first kiss, making
out, feeling girls up, showering and bathing with girls, and giving
anal sex to another girl.
As
Wendy and
Samantha
continued to work their
fingers in and out of Wendy’s
ever slickening fuck tunnel,
Wendy’s other
hand massaging her left breast and
Samantha playing with her right,
and with Wendy sandwiched
between two very beautiful women, one who was her favorite porn star
and the other who looked exactly like her mother,
Wendy
could no longer contain the erotic feelings pulsating through her
body. As the intense orgasmic bliss swept across her body,
Wendy
screamed out
the
name
of her secret cherished beloved.
“Sarah!”
“Yes!”
Samantha cooed into Wendy’s ear. “You’re in love
with a girl!”
The
confession of her special, deep love for her beautiful girlfriend
Sarah, of finally facing and admitting what had been hiding under the
surface for weeks, liberated something within Wendy, and was like
pouring gasoline onto the fire of her orgasm. “Ahhhhhhh!
Ohhhhhhh! Yesssss!”
Finally
achieving the moment she sought,
Wendy
slumped
forward and braced herself against Evie as she tried to catch her
breath,
her
body trembling as smaller but equally intense orgasms still emanated
from her drenched womanhood. Her head rested
on Evie’s
soft mounds and
her hands
on Evie’s shoulders,
half embracing the blonde woman, attempting to recover
from a very intense round of combined
sexual self-pleasuring and heavy petting with Samantha.
“My,
my,
looks like my sexy daughter had a very nice fantasy...about
someone very special.”
Exhausted,
Wendy could only muster enough energy to mutter an “uh-huh”
in response
“Remind
me, who is Sarah to you?” Evie
knew the answer very well; she just wanted Wendy to openly
acknowledge her lesbian dating relationship with
another girl, which would further anchor it within her.
“She’s
my girlfriend.”
“It’s
pretty obvious that you’re hooked on her, aren’t you?”
Wendy
hadn’t thought of it like that before,
quite like this,
but
Evelyn’s assessment felt about right.
“I…
I guess I am…”
“Would
you like to marry her?”
Again,
Wendy couldn’t recall pondering that question before, but who
would make a hotter wife than Sarah? It didn’t occur to Wendy
that one girl marrying another, and especially she herself being one
of the brides, would have been a very foreign and unpalatable concept
to her but a few weeks ago, but now was an idea with which she was,
thanks to her brainwashing and real-life experiences and encounters,
more than comfortable. And her feelings for Sarah were the type, she
recognized, which she would have toward someone she would want to
marry.
“Uh...yeah…
I think so…”
For
the first time, Wendy had consciously, openly expressed her desire
for, or at least her openness to, a lesbian marriage for herself with
a specific girl. Now that she said it, it seemed like a beautiful
idea, especially if Sarah could be her bride.
“Hey,
look what I found!” While
Wendy had been talking with Evelyn, Samantha had
slipped off the sofa to poke into Wendy’s purse. In
her sexual haze,
Wendy had briefly forgotten about Samantha,
and,
as
she turned to face the ravishing
brunette, her
eyes sprang
wide open.
In Samantha’s hands was the glittery-pink strap-on
attached to a transparent harness
that
Wendy had been keeping hidden
in her purse,
the erotic item Wendy had only brought at Sarah’s insistence.
The
stripper wore a
very mischievous
yet seductive
smile
on her face.
“Looks
like someone came prepared for some action.”
“W-wait...uh...
I can explain… I mean…” stuttered
Wendy
as she jolted upright away from Evelyn,
trying to explain away
the sex toy in Samantha’s hands.
“Don’t
worry,
Wendy. I completely understand.”
“You
do,
Mom?…
I mean
‘Evelyn’.
Evelyn!”
“You
can call me ‘Mom’,
Wendy,”
Evelyn countered with
a sultry tone in her voice.
“Like
I said earlier,
I would love to have a sexy daughter like you. Let’s
just pretend that I am your mom, sweetheart. What could be the harm
in that?”
“Uh…
I…”
“Good.
Then it’s settled. I am your mother and you are my daughter,
Wendy, and a very slutty one at that. I would have you no other way.
You are my slut-daughter. As
a matter of fact,
I
think I know what my slut of a daughter really needs.”
“Evelyn,
I thi….”
“It’s
‘Mom’, and you have been hungering for this ever since we
met.” Before
Wendy could raise an objection,
Evelyn drew Wendy close and planted a very sensual, red-lipsticked
kiss on the young woman’s fuschia-painted
mouth.
Then she felt
Evie’s tongue slide past her lips and play around with her own,
bringing a panting moan of delight from the girl. The sexy woman’s
shiny red lips were every bit as soft and delicious as their
appearance had promised them to be, her probing tongue and her
accompanying saliva were excitement incarnate, and the beauty’s
age seemed to add rather to subtract a distinctive, thrilling, novel
dimension to the labial and lingual exchange.
Wendy realized fully within a second of tasting the
platinum blonde’s mouth that she had indeed been hungering for
Evie’s red lips from the first moment she saw them.
Wendy
kissed back. And she sank her tongue into Evie’s
receptive mouth, where the tongues of a sexy, experienced woman and a
sluttified teen girl commenced a delectable, momentous dance.
Yes...I
wanted to kiss you...Mom.
Wendy
knew she had crossed a line,
a first taboo line,
a big
line,
in her relationship with this
woman whom
she had just met and barely knew, who was a player in the porn
industry yet who
was just like her mother, or like her mother could and should be.
But the blonde teen was now glad she
had allowed this kiss, and returned it, glad
she had made this sweet,
blissful discovery.
Making out with this woman was sheer paradise.
Wendy
wondered if kissing
her real mother and
making out with her would be
like
this. Not
wanting to admit it, she was nevertheless somehow certain that it
would be, if not even better.
But whether this woman was her real mother or not
didn’t matter much to Wendy. Pretending would be as good as
the real thing right now.
Ohhhhhhh...oh,
Mom….mmmmmm...
Wendy
could feel
pleasurable
feelings return,
heating her pussy up again.
Guided by the sapphic
and incestuous instincts
implanted in her mind,
Wendy wrapped her arms around Evie and pressed her
nubile, naked
breasts
into Evie’s voluptuous,
bra-covered rack,
while
steadfastly
maintaining
the connection between their lips. She
wanted this bliss to go on and on. Further, her
subconscious mind, her emotions, and her body were consumed with the
desire to go further than this with Evelyn, much further, starting
with seeing her breasts without a bra, and to feel and knead and kiss
them.
Wendy’s
hands strayed over her older partner’s back, savoring the
smoothness of the skin, her fingertips absentmindedly playing along
the shoulder straps and back strap of her silky red bra,
subconsciously desiring to coax Evelyn out of her bra, as she had
helped Samantha doff hers earlier. They
carried on for several steaming minutes, until shared
saliva starting to drool down their chins. Wendy fingered the clasp
on the back of Evelyn’s bra, on the verge of “accidentally”
popping it open.
Samantha
rejoined them on the couch, again pressing her perky breasts against
Wendy’s back.
Sliding
her arms around Wendy’s slim waist from behind, she
leaned forward
and softly whispered into Wendy’s ear in a very naughty tone.
“You
obviously came here to fuck a woman, Wendy, and
guess what?
The
night is still young.
You
have two very horny women here with you willing to let you fuck the
steaming
holes between their legs!”
Evelyn
broke her kiss with Wendy to express her glee. “Ooo, slutty
Wendy wants to fuck us! Whom
do you want to fuck first?” asked Evelyn in a sultry voice,
as she
leaned
back on the couch,
giving Wendy an alluring view of her scantily-clad
body.
She suggestively
slid
her right hand between her legs,
which she spread some, and
moved
her red-nailed fingers
in slow, lazy circles over
her vulva through the gossamer thong.
Wendy’s
eyes followed the suggestive movements, being
particularly
riveted by the sight of Evelyn’s
long, smooth, nylon-covered legs and the glimpse of the
beauty’s pussy lips visible through the shiny, sheer material
of the thong. There was the awesome pussy she would be fucking.
Wendy’s first internal answer to Evelyn’s question, given
the riveting erotic sight in front of her, was resounding. Evelyn.
But
Wendy
hadn’t even agreed to fuck anyone yet,
and
now two women obviously expected hard-core lesbian intercourse
with
her. Having momentarily forgotten the anal intercourse she had
had--and had repeated again and again, and had loved, dizzily loved,
and was a little reluctant to consider real “fucking”,
anyway, at least so far--with Madeline just earlier that afternoon,
she reflected that she had never done “fucking” with
anyone, man or woman, before. This was more, much more, than she had
supposed she would be doing tonight. Plus, she had always planned on
saving the act of “fucking”, at least for her first time,
for the one destined to be her “special someone”...which,
in her mind’s eye had in the past always been a man...although
now...that was much more of an open question. But...it sounded like
both women with her were planning on being on the “receiving”
end of tonight’s fun, letting her keep her maidenhood in a
virgin state, at least nominally, while spending her virginity as a
girl who fucks other girls.
Wendy
sensed that, if she hadn’t been a slut before this night--and
she didn’t think she was, only so far as she had to pretend to
be one to get Lauren’s attention--then she might be on a fast
track to becoming one if she did what Samantha and Evelyn expected of
her. She was still thinking that when her acting-like-a-lesbian
adventure was all over, she would be returning to her previous life,
and wouldn’t want to have been too much of a slut and too much
of a lesbian during this temporary experience, as she supposed.
But...she did kind of know what to do, having seen lesbian strap-on
intercourse numerous times in her porn...and it had
looked...intriguing...no...hot… steaming hot…and...if
she could just do one of the beauties with her, instead of both of
them...maybe that would limit the degeneracy of what she was
apparently about to do.
Maybe,
in fact, she would just commit this act one time, once on this one
night, just to see what it was like, and then she could walk away
from it, if she wanted to, she told herself. This didn’t have
to be the start of an addictive behavior, or something she would do
repeatedly...if she didn’t want to.
As
she thought about it quickly, thought about her sexy present company,
thought about their pussies waiting for her to fill them with her
strapped-on tool of love, and thought about the lust she had for
them, she concluded that she really did want to fuck one of them.
She was going to do it...because she wanted to...because they had
made her steaming hot for them… She wanted to fuck a woman’s
pussy.
She
considered the two choices: Samantha,
her
favorite porn star,
and
Evelyn,
her
mother-look-alike. She found
both women to be very tempting.
Her
first urge was to choose Evelyn.
This clearly was a special woman for whom Wendy
felt a powerful attraction and bond, even though they had just met,
and wanted to get much closer to, physically and emotionally. Yes,
she knew she wanted to go all the way with her. And
Wendy had never sexually been with a female her mother’s age.
What would it be like? Wendy was extremely intrigued. Just
the mere thought of having heavy sex with her almost
made her cum.
And
yet...she had lusted over Samantha and had fantasized about her for
weeks, now… This was her big opportunity to make her secret
dreams about her come true. And, more important,
Evelyn hit a bit too close to home. A small voice in the back of her
mind told her that
doing Evelyn would be too much like doing her mother, and that
incest, or doing something that even seemed similar to incest, that
gave her the same vibes as incest, was wrong and repugnant, Much as
she might like to, she had better not go down that road. Maybe
she could make out with her, like she had already done.
If she felt guilt about that, surprisingly, it wasn’t very
much, and she would do it again in a heartbeat. Maybe
she could feel up her divine tits, even. But
fucking her? What
if...heaven forbid...what if she liked it? Therefore, she turned
around to face Samantha,
who immediately switched from her devilish smile to a friendly one.
“You
want to do me first,
instead of Evelyn? I’m flattered, Wendy.”
“Actually,
I just want to do you, Samantha.”
“Wendy,
why?” asked Evelyn with a faux tone of being emotionally hurt.
“Is it because I’m not pretty enough?”
Turning
back around to face the older woman,
Wendy responded,
“No,
that’s definitely not it. You’re
very beautiful,
and I...I have to admit that...that I like you.”
“How
do you ‘like’ her, Wendy? Like a friend...or like a
lover?” The moment Samantha made that insinuation disguised as
a question, Wendy knew what the stripper was implying was true--that
in a very short time, this sexy blonde beauty had unquestionably
become a love interest for her, a femme fatale who rang all her
bells--but
she didn’t dare admit that to herself very
candidly or
to her companions.
“I...uh...er...um…”
“You
want to fuck
her, don’t you?” Again, the answer was obvious to all
there. Wendy could not deny it, so she tried to explain herself.
“It’s
just that… you look too much like my mom and…”
“That’s
what would make it so hot, Wendy,” Samantha seduced. “I
have sex with my mother all the time.”
“You
do?”
“Sure.
Lots of girls do. Do you love your mother, Wendy?”
“Yes...of
course...very much.”
“Screwing
your mother is by far the best way to show her how much you love her.
I love fucking my mom, and she loves it too. And you want to be
like me, don’t you?”
That
information, given by a girl she viewed as ideal and a model for her,
stunned Wendy. Wendy didn’t know what to say. If Samantha
made love to her mother…then...
“It’s
alright, Wendy,”
Evelyn interjected. “I
understand,
but can I at least help you put on the strap-on,
and then would you mind if
I masturbate while
watching you have sex with Samantha?” Wendy
felt relief in Evelyn taking the issue of screwing her
off the table. Also, the
offer to
help seemed
to Wendy almost like a mother being interested in a daughter’s
normal activities and volunteering to be helpful to her as she
readied for a social event--even though few mothers would help a
daughter strap on a dildo so that she could screw a porn star.
“Sure,
Mom...er,
Evie.
Thank you.”
“You
can just imagine that I’m your mom helping you get ready for a
hot date...with a sexy girl...with the girl of your dreams...and
helping you get ready to fuck her. Okay?”
“Uh...okay…”
Evelyn
took the strap-on and a clear bottle containing a pink gel from
Samantha and, while holding it by the shaft, she applied the gel to
the part of the harness that faced the wearer’s groin.
“What’s
this that you’re putting on?”
“It’s
just
lubricant, dear,” replied Evelynn matter-of-factly,
but telling a bold-faced
lie. “It
will make you more comfortable.” The
truth was that the gel was
no ordinary lubricant,
as it contained
a powerful aphrodisiac and
another psychoactive drug capable of loosening inhibitions and
reducing a
person’s reasoning abilities,
which pharmaceutical elements were designed to be absorbed quickly
and completely through the skin and structures of the vulva.
Whether
that little goody-goody wants to or not, Evelyn
revelled to herself, she’s
going to fuck me with that strap-on!
In
doing so, Wendy would mark a milestone in
seeing her own mother as more of a sexual partner than a maternal
figure,
and take another step in completing her transformation into an
over-sexed
lesbian.
Wendy
observed Evelyn
unbuckle the straps of
the strap-on
and,
with
a gesture,
request
that
she stand up. “Wendy,
sweetie, why don’t you take your panties off?....There…
Turn around...let me look at you…” Wendy gulped as she
obeyed Evelynn’s commands and presented her completely
nude body to her mother’s doppelganger. “Oooo, what a
nice bum you have…....oh!...and your cunt,
darling! It’s so pretty! You really have to show that to the
world!”
Wendy
was both flattered and nervous. Here she was being appraised, as if
by her mother, for her potential sexual worth, maybe even for her
value in the world of porn, but it was favorable and she enjoyed the
praise. Plus, she was about to fuck another girl for the first time,
a porn star, no less, and someone about whom she was quite ga-ga,
with
someone watching,
and it was going to be purely for the sake of sexual
gratification. Tender
love was not going to be the featured ingredient in the sexual act
she was going to perform, but rather sheer, wanton lust.
Evelyn
lowered the strap-on harness close to Wendy's ankles. Hesitating
briefly, Wendy lifted her right leg,
still shod in a
high-heeled shoe, as were all the other legs in this room, and
slipped it through one side of the harness and repeated the same
action with her other leg
in
the other half of the harness.
While
Evelyn slid
the
harness upward,
Wendy
felt tingles of pleasure going up her spine as Evelyn's almond-shaped
red nails grazed the skin of her legs.
Lifting
the harness to Wendy's hips,
Wendy could feel the blonde woman’s breath on her naked pussy
and her eyes running greedily
over it, and
wondered whether the red-lipped woman might lean forward
to kiss her pussy lips, as long as she was so close.
As
if she were a mother reading her daughter’s mind, Evie looked
up at Wendy and asked, “Darling… as a little token of
affection from your mom...would you like me to kiss your pretty
little cunt?”
Wendy
hadn’t been sure she wanted that to happen, but now that Evelyn
was offering it, she knew she wanted it, too. She justified herself
that, as she had recently heard from somewhere--from subliminals,
unknown to her, as well as from Samantha just a minute before--that
sexy acts of intimate affection between mothers and daughters were
okay, even if they were clearly sexual, and since Evelyn was so much
like her mother, what she proposed was okay. She also told herself
that, though she wasn’t going to get too involved with this
sexy temptress because she was too much like her mother, this was
just going to be something little, a little kiss, and that
much would be okay--even though where Wendy was going to be
kissed would make this first little step of oral love with Evie a
monumental leap into clear-cut, deeply-involved lesbian sex with this
woman, which fact Wendy chose to overlook.
“Um...okay…”
“Call
me ‘Mom’. And tell me what you want, darling”
“Uh...Mom...would
you...uh...please...kiss my cunt?”
Evelyn,
smiling, leaned her face into the blonde teen’s shaven pussy
and kissed the awaiting, wet nether lips. “Ah!” Wendy
squealed.
“Oh,
you like that, don’t you, you cute little slut?”
“Yes!
Mom...just a little more...please…” The young blonde
girl cupped the woman’s platinum blonde head to pull her back.
“Please…”
Obliging
gladly, Evelyn licked her young paramour’s pussy lips, then
stuck her tongue inside the canal of love. “Oh! Oh! Yes!”
After
a few more teasing licks and kisses, Evelyn returned to the project
of fixing the heavy-breathing Wendy into her first strap-on, leaving
Wendy wanting, priming her desire for more oral action with Evelyn in
the future. “Don’t worry, honey. You and I can do more
of that anytime you want to.”
The
older blonde
positioned the drug-coated dildo-bearing panel directly over the
girl’s cunt lips, the wet contact and the first effects of the
drugs startling Wendy and making her pussy quiver. Evelyn then
reached around
Wendy's hips,
pulled the straps
through the buckles,
and tightened the straps. This
action put Evelyn's face very close to Wendy's crotch again
and
caused the glittery dildo to brush against the
woman's cheek.
Wendy
felt a strange pleasurable sensation as the cool gel coating the
inner surface of the hard plastic
crotch panel touched and
slithered over and between her pussy lips, causing
her to shift and rub her thighs together. She imagined Evelyn sucking
the strap-on, but quickly chased away the unchaste sexual fantasy.
Surely
that would be going too far with this
glorious woman who reminded her of her mother.
Grabbing
another bottle of lubricant, which Wendy thought was the same bottle
Evelyn had
been
using before, Evelyn squirted the gel into one hand and slathered it
on the dildo in a
way
that made it seem
like
she was giving it a hand job. The action caused the crotch panel of
the harness to push against Wendy's crotch, which made the teen girl
react with loud gasps.
"Now
you're ready for action,
my beautiful, slutty daughter!"
With
the dildo protruding lewdly from her crotch, as if she had her own,
ominous penis, the only purpose for which was to plunge into the
love-hole of another girl, Wendy did feel like a slut, a very lesbian
slut. With that weapon
of love strapped
in place around her hips--by her own mother, as it were, no less--she
was, indeed, poised to be a whorish, girl-fucking slut,
like she never had been before.
There
was no way around that. Yet, her mother had set her up for this, it
so much seemed, had prepared her to play this role, had given her
tacit approval, had made her into the whorish girl-fucker she so much
felt like as she stood there, her penis quivering with her every
movement, seemingly demanding not
to be ignored, but to be revered,
and to be touched and sucked and plunged into hot
female pussy.
Wendy
took the phallus into a hand, running her fingers along it, and
squeezing it, feeling the firmness of it’s body and the slick
texture of its surface, and gauging it’s length and girth.
Though she had seen other women and girls wear and use such a potent
tool, mainly in her porn, she had never imagined herself wearing one,
as far as she could recall. The experience was sheer excitement, one
of pure sexual power. Equipped like this, she could actually fuck
another girl, or a woman--like a man could, but because men using
their dicks for sex was so gross, in her current view, and women
fucking women was beautiful, she could do it so much better than a
man because she was a girl. With this thing, and being a girl, she
could fuck a sexy girl like Samantha properly and beautifully.
Subconsciously,
Wendy regretted not choosing the option to fuck Evelyn, but having
sex with any female was fine at the moment because she was feeling
very aroused. She stared at Evelyn's face for a very long moment,
noticing the beautiful
long,
pale
blonde
hair, the brilliant blue eyes, and the
luscious red lips,
stoking her regret, before
turning to face Samantha, the girl she was about to fuck in her first
vaginal
lesbian
strap-on experience. Samantha,
half-reclining on the sofa,
had her hands on her thighs and her legs--still
sheathed
in her iridescent
nylons and shod in white high heels, and with her
garter belt still on--spread
wide apart,
with
her pink
satin
panties pulled down and bunched up at one ankle,
while
giving Wendy a sensual come-fuck-me
look.
Wendy’s
eyes zoomed in on Samantha’s pussy. Wendy knew this perfection
of young womanhood, having ogled it and drooled over it several times
before in film and print. Now here it was, in the flesh, gaping open
just for her, pink and glistening and pretty and hot. Was it true
that she was really going to get to plunge into it,
to fuck it, like
she had lusted to do numerous times before? Was this beautiful,
famous, dangerous,
irresistible pussy finally going to be hers?
Wendy
was hesitant. She was going to fuck a girl for the first time with a
strap-on, a girl she had
just met in person this night. She knew that normally, in her old
view, intercourse
should happen only when a person was
deeply in love with another and only after marriage. Shouldn’t
she wait for the right circumstances and for her destined soul-mate,
or at least for a more settled relationship? Shouldn’t they at
least be dating?
But
Wendy’s conviction that she had to follow a
traditional model had
been drastically undermined and most all of her moral values were now
corrupted. Without quite knowing when and why she had changed her
long-held beliefs about chastity, she realized in this moment that
she--perhaps as a maturing phase in her life, she rationalized to
herself, or maybe because she had had the privilege lately of hanging
out with cool, enlightened girls, like Sarah, who had shown her a
more liberal, more correct path--had come to see them as outdated and
that she now felt liberated from them. Chastity and waiting was so
passé,
so limiting.
She was free to indulge her passions as she saw fit.
I
like Samantha...but I hardly know her… That doesn’t
matter. The only thing that matters is pleasure. I want her. I
want her pussy. She wants me to fuck her. I want to fuck her. I’m
going to fuck that little slut and her lovely, juicy whore-pussy.
She
strolled up
to Samantha
on
her high heels
and
stood between her wide-opened legs,
looking down at her with a sultry, openly-aroused
gaze, scanning over her beautiful face and body, while lightly
running her hands over her own naked
teen
breasts enticingly.
Then,
bending her legs and holding
the sofa’s backrest for support with one hand,
Wendy lowered
her body onto Samantha.
Grasping
and aiming
the
glittery pink shaft with her other
hand,
she descended more until the tip of the dildo touched and then barely
split the stripper’s wet pussy lips.
This
was the big moment. She sensed that if she continued, she would
never be the same. She would, ever-after, be a
girl who fucks
girls. A girl-fucking
girl.
A girl-fucker.
A true slut.
Did she want that? Did
she want to fuck this girl that much?
The
question dissipated
as lust for this girl and this pussy overwhelmed her, knowing and
feeling that her strap-on was now within Samantha’s labia,
albeit slightly, poised to invade another girl, and not just any
girl, but the beautiful porn-star of her dreams. She
was soooo close to fucking her.
……...Yesssss……..
She
pushed
it in slightly. A strange pleasurable feeling shot up Wendy’s
spine, as if she was doing something that she had always been meant
to do, that was
her destiny, and that she would be finally claiming
this sexy pornstar as her own, a girl, it was now
perfectly clear to her, whom she had longed to fuck ever since she
first saw her in that DVD Sarah had given her weeks ago.
She then held onto both of Samantha’s shoulders and lowered her
body onto Samantha’s further,
the phallus sinking deeper, until
their nipples touched. A loud moan escaped from Samantha’s pink
lips.
“Kiss
me,” whispered Samantha as she likewise placed her hands on
Wendy’s shoulders.
Kiss
Samantha hard… You love her lips…
Without
delay, Wendy kissed Samantha’s glossy pink lips hungrily
with her fuchsia-painted lips. How long had she waited
to
kiss this beautiful teen porn star again?
Although it had only been a matter of minutes in the
past, she hadn’t gotten nearly enough of Samantha’s
pretty painted mouth the first time they had kissed, and it
seemed like it had been almost forever…
but now
it was happening...and they were fucking, too, at the same time!….
This was sheer heaven. Wendy moaned wantonly into her dream slut’s
mouth. “Mmmmmmm…”
Wendy,
you love kissing a pretty girl like Samantha.
Wendy,
you love the feel of your painted mouth touching and sliding along
and tasting and kissing the painted mouth of another girl.
Wendy,
you love kissing with lipstick on, on you and on your companion.
Wendy,
you love kissing soft, feminine lips coated with beautiful lipstick.
Wendy,
you love wearing lipstick.
Wendy,
you are so glad you wear makeup.
Wendy,
you are so glad you wore makeup, heavy makeup, tonight.
Wendy,
you are so happy that you are wearing lipstick right now.
Wendy,
wearing heavily-applied lipstick all the time is so right and so
good.
Wendy,
lipstick and all other makeup make lesbian sex possible.
Wendy,
lipstick and other makeup makes a girl ready for lesbian sex.
Wendy,
makeup is a part of lesbian sex.
Wendy,
you love kissing a hot girl when you are both wearing lipstick.
Wendy,
kissing a girl with lipstick-painted lips, when you are wearing
lipstick, too, is divine enjoyment.
Wendy,
you will always wear deeply-coated lipstick and other makeup so that
you will attract other sexy girls and be ready to kiss them long and
hard, should the opportunity arise.
Wendy,
you love fucking girls when you are both wearing makeup and when you
are kissing with painted lips.
Wendy,
you love fucking Samantha.
Wendy,
you want to fuck Samantha very long and very hard.
Fuck
her like the lesbian slut she is.
Fuck
her like the lesbian slut you are.
Fuck
Samantha hard… Move those hips…
Wendy
sank her hips down further, driving her wicked weapon deeper into her
crush’s womanhood, while kissing her painted pink lips more
ardently.
At
length, Wendy turned
to face Evelyn, for some reason thinking that she was trying to
communicate with her, but Evelyn seemed occupied with
her own round of masturbation.
She had her hand on one of her red-nippled breasts and another on her
pussy,
while her mouth was partially opened. Suddenly,
though, her eyes met Wendy’s with a look of absolute lust and
she smiled at her, as if saying, “Welcome to the club, you sexy
girl-fucking slut.” Wendy was about to volunteer to help Evelyn
with her body play, but the woman’s eyes closed again in
pleasure, and she decided to save the offer for later. Wendy did,
after all, have her own hands full at the time.
Kiss
Samantha more… Use your tongue… Fuck
Samantha hard… Move those hips...
Turning
back to face Samantha,
savoring the wonderful beauty of this slut in heat, Wendy
kissed her
again, pushing her tongue deep into
Samantha’s
painted
mouth. She slowly rocked her hips to work the dildo more
deeply yet into Samantha’s
pussy,
as well.
With
a forceful jab, which made Wendy’s partner in sex gasp for
breath, the
strap-on was buried to the hilt.
Again,
Wendy...fuck her again...go deep...deeper…
Then
Wendy retreated some before pushing back in. She started repeating
that action. Only
a small, glittery section could be seen whenever Wendy pulled back.
Evelyn smiled with approval at the sight of Wendy thrusting the
phallus to the farthest depth it could go, with each stroke causing
Samantha to moan deeply into Wendy’s mouth.
“Wendy,
you two make such a cute couple. And you look so much like each
other. You could be twin sisters! It’s just like you’re
fucking your sister, sweetheart. I’ve always thought sisters
make the best lovers...well, that is, after mothers and daughters.”
After
letting that sink in, Evelyn
continued. “Incest is wonderful, isn’t it? Sisters with
sisters...mothers with daughters… It’s all beautiful and
wonderful…don’t you think?”
Wendy’s
subconscious programming made her inclined to agree, and she did not
screen Evelyn’s
insinuations critically in this moment. “Mm hm…”
“Samantha
would make a perfect girlfriend for you, Wendy. You’d like to
date her, wouldn’t you?” The fact that Samantha and
Evelyn
were supposedly engaged registered, if barely, on the blonde teen, as
she continued to plunge into Samantha rhythmically.
“But...but
aren’t you two engaged?”
“Yes,
we are...but that shouldn’t get in the way of pleasure and true
love, dear. Besides, our relationship is completely open. Samantha’s
a whore, Wendy. She’s free to do as she wishes with other
women...like
with
you. Date her...fuck her… It’s all fine. If you wanted
to, you could even marry
her...… We’d work it out…” The
possibilities Evelyn
was whispering into her soul were making Wendy all the more aroused.
“You
don’t want this to be the last time you fuck Samantha, do you?”
“...no…”
“Of
course not, Wendy. Now that you two have finally met, you want to
see Samantha again and again. You want that, too, don’t you,
Samantha?” The brunette teen stripper voiced her accent.
“I’m
going to make sure that you two fuck often. Okay, Wendy?”
Even
though, but a half hour before, Wendy had remembered that she had no
intention of “going too far” down the road of lesbian sex
generally, nor of doing anything this evening close to crossing the
line, for the first time, into the hard-core lesbian sex in which she
was indulging right now, and quite voluntarily so, that had been all
but forgotten. She didn’t care. Lost in a swirl of lesbian
lust, Wendy
knew she would love what Evelyn had just offered,
and
was ecstatic
to hear that this rendezvous would not be her last one with her dream
porn star.
“Mmmm…
Okay.”
“Keep
your hips, moving, darling. In and out. Harder. Fuck this
beautiful slut harder!”
Evelyn,
an expert director of lesbian porn, watched as the blonde teen
complied with the choreography she dictated,
pumping her new girlfriend’s pussy more vigorously.
Indeed, Wendy felt like she was in the middle of one of the numerous
lesbian porn flicks she had consumed over the past several weeks, a
lesbian porn actress playing the role of the naive straight girl
being corrupted and transformed into a lesbian by another beautiful
teen and by her own sexy lesbian mother. But that impression was
okay with her; it felt good.
Evelyn
spoke
again. “You
know, Wendy,” Evie said, sounding to Wendy like a wise and
interested mother teaching her beloved daughter the truths of life,
“once you fuck another girl, you are a lesbian forever. And
fucking Samantha means you are in a relationship with her now. She
is your girlfriend.
Wendy, you have a porn-star slut for your girlfriend.
You two are lovers now.
Isn’t that cool? And once you fuck a slut, you are a slut.
You can’t ever go back to not being one. The good girl you
once were is now gone forever.”
Wendy
felt some alarm at Evelyn’s
precepts, but they did sound like the truth. She couldn’t ever
go back now?
“The
girl you are now fucking is not just any slut. She is a porn star.
You are a lucky girl to fuck a porn star. You are thrilled about
this privilege. She is the porn star of your dreams, are you are
fucking her. Isn’t that the coolest, best thing ever? That
makes you a very dirty slut, indeed...of the same class...porn-star
class…
“You
two little sluts belong together… You are so much alike…just
like twin sisters...and both nasty, filthy sluts...the kind who would
fuck their own sister...or mother... What a great team you would
make… Imagine yourselves in a photo shoot together...fucking…
like this… We’d call the layout ‘Young
Twin Sluts in Love’...
Or we could film it… Samantha and Wendy...porn co-stars...two
hot sister-sluts…Samantha and Wendy...sisters
and lovers…on
screen...and off screen...
“You
love Samantha’s body, don’t you, Wendy? Love her lesbian
body…
Love her sweet tits..”.
Wendy,
look at Samantha’s breasts.... You love her breasts… She
wants you to kiss them… You want to kiss her breasts…
Kiss her nipples...taste...suck...
Samantha
broke the kiss and swallowed the hanging threads of saliva dangling
from Wendy’s lower lip. “Suck on my nipples.”
Lowering
her head to Samantha’s chest, Wendy grabbed Samantha’s
left breast and kissed the pink-painted nipple,
swirling
her tongue around the areola that was also painted pink.
Ohhh, Samantha…. Her
breast is so soft…
The nipple paint had a strawberry and vanilla flavor, giving it a
pleasant taste. Yum,
this tastes good…
She tastes good… Samantha is delicious...
Samantha
arched her back with her face pointing to the ceiling and her braided
brown hair draping
over the backrest of the couch, pushing her breasts against Wendy’s
face. “Yesssssssssssssssssssss,” the brown-haired
stripper hissed while cradling Wendy’s head and stroking her
hair. “Ohhhh...yesssss… Suck
me and fuck me, Wendy! Do me, you sexy
little slut!”
Let’s
see how you like this!
Wendy bit on the nipple and pulled, causing Samantha to yelp. She
then switched
over to Samantha’s other breast, pleasuring it with her lips
and hands like on the other breast. “Mmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmm…”
moaned Wendy. So
this is what fucking another girl feels like. I
could do this forever… I love playing with her tits, too…
They are soooo sexy... I want to fuck this porn slut again, again,
and again… I looooove this… I
love her...
“Wendy...I
want to fuck you...in the ass… Would you like that?”
Wendy knew that could be considered “going too far” with
Samantha...but...after the thorough screwing she was giving her new
girlfriend’s cunt, letting Samantha give it to her in the rear
was the least she could do. Plus, after all, Wendy had already been
anally fucked just that late afternoon...for the first time..and many
times over the course of her late afternoon/early evening tryst with
Madeline. Wendy now knew, knew well, what it was like...and she
absolutely loved it. If
Samantha wanted her ass, Wendy was delighted to give it to her,
and started looking forward to Samantha plunging into what Wendy now
considered to be a tunnel of love just as ripe and just as suitable
for fucking as her vagina, or even more so, considering that she
wanted to preserve her vaginal virginity. In her mind, anal sex let
her get fucked without getting fucked, kind of.
“Samantha...okay…”
A
loud erotic moan from Evelyn made Wendy turn in Evelyn’s
direction. The voice sounded so much like her mom’s that, for a
split second, Wendy thought it was her actual mother who was moaning
beside her. Their eyes met, communicating erotic intentions and
a sexual destiny.
Despite steadfastly refusing to fuck Evelyn with the strap-on, she
couldn’t resist ogling
her
mom’s doppelganger.
There
was a glistening silver chain necklace around Evelyn’s neck,
something Wendy
hadn’t
noticed before.
Dangling at the bottom of the chain, right above the cleavage, was
set of twin Venus symbols. Wendy’s eyes focused on the symbol
of sapphic
love, becoming lost in it. Her alert eyes gradually became
expressionless.
With
a voice of authority, Evelyn spoke the teen girl’s name.
“Wendy…look at me...”
Raising
her eyes back up, Wendy made eye contact with Evelyn.
“I
know you want to fuck me badly, Wendy.”
“Yes...but…”
“Pretend
you are fucking me right now, Wendy…” The teen gazed
into Evelyn’s eyes intensely. A new version of reality
materialized in the girl’s brain as her eyes glazed over more.
“That’s right… It’s sheer pleasure…”
Wendy closed her eyes, imagining the older blonde’s pussy
receiving her thrusts. “Yessss… Fuck me, sweetheart…
You are soooo turned on… You’re fucking me now…
You are in my hot pussy... It loooves what you are doing to me…”
Wendy pictured Evelyn was underneath her, her beautiful pale blonde
hair splayed out around her head, her large breasts bobbing up and
down under Wendy’s assault on her body. “Pick up the
pace… We both want more... Faster… Harder…”
“Yesssssss…ohhhh...Mommm…
mmmmm…”
“That’s
right, my beautiful baby
daughter. Fuck your mother. Nice and hard.” Wendy
accelerated her thrusts and moaned softly.
With
the increased speed and force with which her steaming womanhood was
being plied, Samantha also inadvertently let out a sharp gasp and a
low wail of pleasure, causing the blonde teen’s fantasy to
disperse.
Wait...she’s...she’s
not my mother...and I...I’m fucking Samantha...
Evelyn
read the girl’s face accurately, and adjusted her tactic.
“Don’t deny your feelings. You want to fuck me because
I’m a sexy, attractive woman who resembles your mother, Mary.”
“B-but
I...can’t…”
“Wendy,
listen to me. Don’t deny your feelings. Just go along with
them. You’ll be much happier.”
“Go...along...with...my
feelings…” repeated Wendy with a monotone voice.
“Yes…
You want to fuck your mother because you love her...”
“But...incest
is wrong…” stated
Wendy
weakly.
“It’s
not wrong if it’s done for love. There’s nothing wrong
with love, especially lesbian love.
Don’t
you agree?”
“Love
isn’t wrong…”
“Lesbian
love isn’t wrong,” corrected Evelyn in a stern voice.
“Lesbian
love isn’t wrong…”
“If
lesbian love isn’t wrong, then lesbian incest is fine,
too,
isn’t that right?”
“...yes…”
“Lesbian
incest with your mother is the highest form of love.”
“...incest
with mother...highest love…”
“You
will always think about lesbian incest…”
“I
will always think about lesbian incest…”
“You
will always imagine having sex with your mother and sister…”
“I
will always imagine having sex with my mother and sister…”
“Samantha
is so much like you… She is just like a twin sister to you.”
“...my
twin sister…”
“Samantha
and you are sisters, Wendy. You are fucking your sister. And you
love it, don’t you?”
“...yes…”
“You
love fucking your sister…”
“...love
fucking my sister…”
It
was Hecate’s intention to blur the distinction in Wendy’s
mind between the words “sister” and “lover”,
to make them essentially synonymous to her, so that every time she
heard “sister” she would automatically think “lover”,
and then to confuse the words “mother” and “lover”,
as well.
“Your
sister is your lover.”
“...sister...lover…”
“Your
lover is your sister.”
“...lover...sister…”
“Sisters
should be lovers. Sisters are lovers.”
“...sisters...are...lovers…”
“You
are committing incest...and you love it…”
“...incest…love
it...”
“Incest
is love.”
“...incest...love…”
“You
already love incest, Wendy, darling. You already do it. Fucking
your mother would be no different. You love your
mother, don’t you, Wendy?”
“...yes…
I love my mother very much…”
“You
want to show your mother how much you love her, don’t
you?”
“...yes…
I do…”
“A
daughter having sex with her mother is true love. You want to make
love to your mother. You
want to commit lesbian
incest with your mother, just like you are doing with your sister.
Wendy, you want to fuck your mother.”
“...fuck...mother…”
“Your
mother is your lover.”
“...mother...lover…”
“Your
lover is your mother.”
“...lover...mother…”
“Mothers
and daughters should be lovers…”
“...mothers...daughters...lovers…”
“A
daughter should fuck her mother.”
“...fuck...Mom…”
“You
want to fuck your mother.”
“...fuck...Mom…”
“You
will fuck your mother.”
“...fuck...Mom…”
“Now
pull out of Samantha and stand in front of me.”
Robotically,
Wendy complied. The glittery pink shaft slid away from Samantha’s
vagina with loud squelching sounds. She got off from the couch,
turned around to face Evelyn, and stood there in her heels
and wobbling, dripping strap-on. The older blonde
proceeded to
kneel in front of Wendy. Evelyn held onto
one
of Wendy’s thighs with
one red-nailed hand and grasped the shaft with the other,
while licking along its length several times with her tongue, tasting
Samantha’s pussy juices. At this moment, Wendy returned from
her hypnotic stupor and looked down
at Evelyn with shock, which quickly turned into acceptance and
arousal.
Oh!
Mom?!...or is it Evelyn?...is...is kissing my...my penis…I
mean...my strap-on... I just fucked Samantha with it…
Ooooo...this is so...naughty…….but…...but so
cool…… It looks so hot… It feels so sexy....
She’s so beautiful……….. Yes,
this is exactly
what
I wanted to do…
I
wanted sex with Samantha… I fucked her… I wanted to so
bad...and I did it… I fucked my first girl... It was...it was
amazing… I’m glad we did it… I’d do it
again right now… I hope we can fuck again soon… What a
hot, fuckin’ whore she is... That
must be why I...why I love her so much…and want her so much…
And
Evie…I want her, too…maybe even more than Samantha…
I don’t know… But I do want sex with her… I’d
love to fuck her just like I did Samantha..,. I’d loooove to…
She’s so hot… But...but I can’t… I can’t
go that far with her…not all the way like I did with
Samantha... It’d be like doing my own mother… But what
she’s doing now isn’t going too far...and...I love it...I
love her… Wendy’s
thoughts started incorporating more words and phrases and
urges she
had picked up watching porno. Yes...please...you
bitch...suck my fuckin’ dick...
Evelyn
smiled at Wendy,
accurately deciphering Wendy’s thoughts and emotions about what
was happening between them, and--confident
that Wendy, with a little more physical and psychological
manipulation, could be lured so deeply into a pool of boiling,
incestuous lesbian lust that she could neither control nor resist her
cravings--gave
the tip of the shaft several light flicks with her tongue before
enveloping the member in her mouth. Wendy shuddered when she felt the
base of the shaft push back against her pussy,
and the soul-stirring, doctored
gel
sink further into her vagina.
Hands
touched Wendy’s hips from behind and a tongue licked Wendy’s
ear. Knowing that it was Samantha--pantiless
and braless, standing behind Wendy now in only her heels, shimmering
nylons, and garter belt--Wendy
twisted her torso
around, without withdrawing her phallus from Evelyn’s
mouth, and
kissed the lecherous pink lips with her own fuchsia-colored lips.
Samantha’s long-nailed, pink-tipped fingers again
enclosed Wendy’s young, prominent orbs of love, which were
eager for more attention from the pretty porn star’s hands, and
which, along with the meshing of mouths, caused the blonde girl to
whimper softly.
Statements
bubbling up from Wendy’s corrupted subconscious struck her as
truths:
I
love girls. I love pretty girls. I love kissing girls. I love
girls feeling me up. I love fucking girls. I love female porn
stars. I
love
Samantha.
I want
to be like Samantha.
Samantha’s
a lesbian
whore.
She's
a good role model for me. I want to be a lesbian slut like her. I
love
fucking her. I
wouldn't mind if she fucked
me. I want her to fuck me...in the ass...
Pressure
on her pussy from the base of the glittery pink toy and the
feeling
of nails grazing her thighs caused Wendy to jump slightly with
the accompanying jolt of pleasure and
to
turn her upper
body and her attention
back toward
the
woman who was giving her a blowjob, while Samantha
adjusted to Wendy’s turning away toward Evelyn by encircling
Wendy’s waist with her hands, running them sensually over the
skin of her belly, and sliding them up ever closer to the blonde
teen’s naked tits.
Wendy
was
again awed by how beautiful Evelyn looked and how closely Evelyn
resembled her mother,
and subconsciously wished again that
her real mother was in Evelyn’s place and dressed up in the
same manner.
“Mmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmm…”
Evelyn moaned into the shaft as she sucked and deepthroated it.
“There’s
nothing wrong with incest,” suggested
Samantha
into Wendy’s ear,
while also licking it. “You want to have lesbian sex with your
mother, Mary. If
you fucked
me, why wouldn’t you fuck her, too? She might be
an even better fuck than me, hmmm? You
want to go all the way with her, like you did with me. You want to
fuck your mother.”
Wendy’s
eyes became expressionless as she tilted her head back, resting
it on
Samantha’s left shoulder. Her eyes were angled towards the
ceiling.
“You
want to be exactly like me, Wendy. I fuck my mother. You can fuck
yours, too. You want to, Wendy, sweetie. You want to fuck your
mother. It is only natural. You’ll love it, just like I do.
You will fuck your mother.
“Evelyn
can be Mary... Mary can be Evelynn…” Samantha,
her arms
already underneath Wendy’s arms, reached up
to grope Wendy’s breasts,
instilling Wendy with heightened arousal which she would associate
with incest and with the blended identities of Mary and Evelyn.
“Mary
can be sexy and hot and ready to fuck, just like Evelyn. You want
your mom
to be very sexy and beautiful and immoral and slutty
and hot for lesbian sex...with you. You
wish Mary to
be
like Evelyn…”
Special
lights on the ceiling began glowing in a varied spectrum of colors.
They resembled half-buried glass spheres with no visible filaments.
The devices emitted light modulated with pre-programmed signals and
frequencies to influence vulnerable minds with specific thoughts and
emotions. Wendy’s eyes automatically focused on the pulsing
lights.
Flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...
Mary
held a golden tube of red lipstick in her fingers and was applying
the bright candy-apple
red color to her lips, the same color that adorned the long red nails
on her fingers, in front of a large gold-framed mirror. Her eyes were
adorned with gleaming silver and pink eyeshadows,
black eyeliner, and thick black mascara. Gold and ruby earrings
dangled from her ears. Her
long hair was now a very light ashy platinum blonde. A
red negligee covered her body. Red painted nipples were visible
through the sheer fabric. Looking over one of
Mary’s
shoulders was Lauren, dressed in a pink satin bra and panties with
white lace,
whose now-medium-brown hair was streaked with veins of gold. They
both smiled at each other in the mirror. Mary’s brightly
red-painted lips met with Lauren’s lustrous pink-colored lips
in a ferocious, passionate kiss.
“I
love you,” Lauren whispered.
The
sexed-up MILF turned around on her chair and spread her legs. Lauren
kissed downwards, dragging her tongue and brushing her lips against
Mary’s neck, cleavage, belly, and inner thighs,
while
resting her hands on the woman’s curves for support. Mary
emitted a hushed moan when the sexy Latina kissed her pussy. Threads
of saliva connected Lauren’s lips to Mary’s labia as
Lauren pulled away.
Flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash…
Mary
and Lauren are lesbian lovers…
You
are extremely jealous of Lauren…
You
are extremely jealous of Mary…
You
crave Mary’s attention…
You
crave Lauren’s attention…
You
desire Mary and Lauren…
You
want to seduce Mary and Lauren…
You
want to have sex with Mary and Lauren…
You
want Mary and Lauren to love you, but not each other...
But
you desire Mary, your mother, above all others...
Flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash…
The
bed creaked loudly from the sexual activity of two naked female
occupants. Mary and Lauren had their legs intertwined in a scissoring
position and their pussies touching intimately. Lauren’s left
leg was over Mary’s right shoulder. They moaned and gasped
while thrusting their hips back and forth against each other.
Glistening beads of sweat rolled down their smooth bodies.
*flash*
Lying alongside
one another,
Lauren grabbed one of Mary’s large E-cup breasts and sucked on
the red-painted nipple, swirling her tongue around the areola, and
giving it flicks with her tongue. *flash*
Mary
was now on her fours
on top of her Latina teen lover, gazing
with adoration and lust down at Lauren, who reclined under her with a
pillow propping her head up.
Mary
held Lauren’s chin and tilted it upwards. Their eyes locked and
Lauren looked at the older woman submissively and
worshipfully before
they kissed each other deeply and fervently. Strands of Mary’s
pale blonde hair draped
over
Lauren’s shoulders as Mary, manifesting
her dominance, pressed her face and body into Lauren’s, making
her sink further back into her pillow.
Flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash…
Lustrous
raven hair flowed from Mary’s head in long, wavy curls. She
tossed her head and her mane back, reveling in her beauty and
nakedness. Kneeling on the bed, she, with
gold-lidded eyes,
ogled the smooth, naked ass and wet pussy facing her of the hot
blonde Latina on all fours
in
front of her. She
pulled on a silver chain she was holding,
tightening the tension on Lauren’s white, studded collar,
causing Lauren to yelp. The older woman’s gold-painted
lips curved in a wicked smile.
Lauren
turned her head around toward
her mistress, who was clad in black leather lingerie decorated with
gold-plated studs and
who leaned over, one hand on the girl’s round derriere for
support, to kiss the Latina’s red mouth before straightening
back up.
Projecting from Mary’s crotch was a
gilded ivory strap-on mounted on a black, studded harness. A loud
moan escaped from Lauren’s lips as the white shaft entered her
quivering, moist cunt.
Flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash…
Wendy
was standing in the living room of her home observing Mary and Lauren
walking down the stairs, but it was
not
exactly as Wendy had remembered the scene
from the real world of earlier that evening. This time, Mary
was clothed in a sexy red dress, red high heels, and was beautifully
made up. She had her arm wrapped
around Lauren's waist. Kayla
stood next to and slightly behind Wendy.
"Your
mom's a sexy woman,"
she whispered into Wendy’s ear.
Shocked
at the saucy
remark,
Wendy turned around to face Kayla, only to be surprised again by what
she saw. Kayla was dressed in a pearlescent, sheer pink organza
blouse and a matching miniskirt
of the same fabric. Clearly
visible beneath
those items were
a green satin bra with
purple lace and matching panties .
Shiny pink lipstick covered
her
lips, matching the color of her nails, eyeshadow, and five-inch
high-heeled
shoes.
"Whaaa?…
Kayla?…
Why are you here? And why
are you dressed like this?!"
"Wendy,
are you that dense? I'm here to fuck your mother!
I
mean, who could resist such a sexy woman like her?"
"No,
you can't! She's off limits!"
"Wendy!”
reprimanded
a voice from the bottom of the stairway. “Where
are your manners?”
Mary and Lauren walked into the living room, holding hands. “This
isn't how you treat a guest.”
Mary’s tone turned quickly from cross to playful and
flirtatious. “And
besides…”
Mary
gave Kayla a lecherous look while licking her bright red lips.
“I never
said I didn't
like Kayla, did I?
In fact,” Mary cooed in
a husky voice as
she tossed her long hair and then twirled a thick strand around a
finger, before dropping Lauren’s hand and taking a step or two
toward Kayla,
“I
would absolutely love to spend some time with such
a beautiful young fox.”
“How
would you like to go out with
me sometime,
Mrs. Love-Livingston?”
“Ooo…
I’d love to date you, Kayla.”
“But,
Mom...what about Dad?”
“That
creep? I’m divorcing him, honey. No more men for me again,
ever!” Wendy found herself understanding that outlook as very
natural and logical, and sympathized with her mom’s choice. “A
beautiful young woman like Kayla, however,” Mary cooed, as she
took another step closer to the Powers’ maid, “that’s
totally different…”
“Well,
then...what
about
me?”
Wendy protested, although the idea of her mother dating Kayla was
nevertheless something she’d love to see happen.
“Don’t
worry, Wendy,” Kayla replied reassuringly. “You and I
can date, too. I want to date you. But right now...your Mom...she
is one hot babe. Her pussy is calling to me.”
I
meant “What about me and Mom”… But I’d
definitely love to date Kayla, too. That she wants to...is really
cool, too...
Lauren
disappeared as Kayla and Mary
finished walking to each other, embraced,
and fell into a long kiss. “So, Kayla,” Mary softly
whispered into Kayla’s ear, but loud enough for Wendy to
clearly hear, “you’re going to fuck me, hmm?”
"But!"
Suddenly,
someone squeezed Wendy’s
wrist.
Turning to her side, she saw Evelyn standing next to her. "Wendy,
I can help you." The voice was sweet and comforting and
motherly.
Evelyn
looked like a more wholesome version of her mom than
Mary did currently.
She was dressed in a modest, short-sleeved red dress with small white
polka dots and a knee-length skirt. Her face was plain and
her hair was
done in a simple style,
with the hair
parted at the center with no bangs. She wore brightly white tennis
shoes. The Mary look-alike pulled Wendy across
the living room and out of the front
door into the front yard. It
struck Wendy as something her mother would do in an urgent situation,
and she found herself comfortable being led by this woman like that.
“Evelyn!
Why are you here?” Wendy was both excited and confused at the
same time.
“Wendy,
I know what you’re going through and what’s at stake.”
“I
don't really want to lose my mom!"
“I
can help you, but in order for me to help you, you’ll have to
trust me. Do you trust me?”
The
blonde teenage girl stared deeply into the blue eyes of the woman who
looked exactly like her mother. Not knowing why, she found her
feelings of doubt slipping away.
“Yes…” whispered Wendy.
“Then
close your eyes, and don’t open them until I say so.”
Doing
as she was told, Wendy closed her eyes. She felt her clothes
vanishing away, followed
by cool air caressing
her skin,
succeeded by what felt like
smooth metallic
fabric
sliding onto
her body as if
it were
a living thing.
“Now
turn around and open your eyes.”
Wendy
gasped at what she saw in the large mirror that appeared in front of
her. She was dressed,
if it could be called that,
in a skimpy bra and thong that
barely covered any skin.
The
material appeared at first to be of a smooth pinkish-silver fabric,
but closer inspection revealed it to consist of fine silver chains
decorated with dangling gems of pink topaz, through
which teasing glimpses of her skin, nipples, and pussy lips were to
be had.
Her hair,
very long and shiny,
light smoky-silver,
was
tied into a high ponytail with a silver and topaz hair clip. A
pearlescent frosted pink color covered her lips. Looking downward,
she saw her feet clad in metallic pink high heel sandals with ankle
straps and thick heels. Most shocking was the pink metal strap-on
that protruded from her crotch, held in place
by silver
metal straps.
While
the appearance of the strap-on protruding obscenely from her groin
stunned Wendy initially, it wasn’t long before she found
herself quite accustomed to it. She had the feeling that she had
used it on some girl or other before, that she loved the tool and
what it could do, that it was now almost part of her, that it was
natural to wear it and use it, and that she wouldn’t mind
wearing it most of the time, if not all the time. It was her.
"You
need to master the art of lesbian love and seduce your mother and
every female close to her. By making her and her girlfriends jealous,
you can win her back. You must outdo them and become the best lesbian
seductress ever.”
There
was no objection from Wendy, who was completely taken with and turned
on by her new look, and she
didn’t flinch when Evelyn,
who was standing to Wendy’s side out of Wendy’s field of
view, took Wendy by the hand and pulled her away from the mirror.
“Now close your eyes.” When
Wendy had complied, Evelyn turned the girl to face her, then slid her
hands onto Wendy’s
shoulders, giving Wendy tingles of pleasure.
“Now open.”
Wendy’s
mouth dropped open at the woman’s changed appearance. Evelyn’s
lips were now covered with a thick layer of glossy, fire-engine red
lipstick, the same color as her long almond-shaped nails. Shimmering
blue eyeshadow and heavily applied black mascara adorned her eyes.
Her
pale hair was in a complex half-up style that cascaded in curls over
her shoulders, back, and front. Her
ordinary-looking
dress was now a halter-type, sleeveless red lame microdress
with a daring,
plunging V-neckline
that almost reached
her navel,
and displayed the inner halves of both breasts, which threatened to
spill out at any moment.
Red mirror-like high heels replaced her tennis shoes,
and glossy, sheer nude nylons climbed up her long, slender legs.
Wendy
could only look speechlessly
at
Evelyn
as she allowed the teen to drink her in a minute. The woman then
knelt down and slid one
hand onto
Wendy’s
pink strap-on. Wendy
felt the touch in exquisite detail, down to the stroke
of each fingertip and fingernail. The
erotic pleasure of the touch made Wendy momentarily dizzy.
“Accept
me into your heart, Wendy…
“Evelyn
can become Mary…
“Mary
can become Evelyn…
“Evelyn
is Wendy's mother…
“Wendy's
mother is Evelyn…
“Wendy
wants her mother to be like Evelyn…
The
blonde woman wrapped her red lips around Wendy’s phallus, which
Wendy felt as if the dildo was a real part of her, making the teen’s
legs wobble with sharp arousal.
"Wendy
loves her mother...
“Wendy
is in love with her mother…
"Wendy
loves Evelyn because she is like her mother...
"Evelyn
can become Wendy's mother...
“Wendy
loves Evelyn...
“Wendy
is in love with Evelyn...
“Wendy
wants to fuck Evelyn...
“Wendy
wants to fuck her mother...
A
residue of morality and conscience within Wendy arose to resist the
incestuous suggestion. Wendy's face contorted in reflection of that
inner conflict. Wendy felt Evelyn’s mouth, in response, start
sucking and licking with wanton abandon--both
in her fantasy and in real life, which two scenarios now became
folded together into one experience in her mind--making
her moan with delight. “Ohhh...mmmmm…”
"Love
cannot be controlled...
"Your
desires cannot be controlled...
"You
cannot control whom
you love...
"You
are in love with your mother...
“You
can’t help it…
“You
love your mother…
“You
are helpless to resist it...
“You
are in love with your mother…
“It
is your destiny…
“You
will make love to your mother…
“It
is useless to resist…
“You
don’t want to resist…
“It
is good to be in love with your mother…
“Love
your mother with your body…
“Show
your mother you love her with sex...
“You
want to be in love with your mother...
“You
love Mary Love-Livingston..."
Flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash…
Wendy
lowered her blank eyes from the ceiling down to the woman who was
sucking the glittery pink shaft projecting from her crotch. She
lightly stroked Evelyn’s blonde hair. She
knew she loved this woman, and that her feelings were filial, yes,
but were also full of carnal desire for her. Was this woman
Evelyn...or her mom?
“Mom…?”
uttered Wendy emotionlessly.
Bass
beats played in the background in a loop. Acting
on cue, Wendy started
moving
her hips forwards and backwards.
At first, it seemed to be so natural and so pleasurable, and exactly
what she should be doing--fucking this woman’s mouth.
However, after several
thrusts,
her weak conscience made another attempt. No!
Incest! Perversion!
Wendy hissed at the sudden onset of a headache. She backed away from
Evelyn abruptly and broke free from the clutches of Samantha,
who had been embracing and feeling her up from behind. She
shook her head,
trying to reject and escape from the sin enveloping her, while
walking backwards.
"No...no...no..."
"Wendy!
Look at the lights... Listen to my voice..."
“No...”
“Don’t
resist your feelings. It’ll only make you feel more pain. Just
let your heart go where it wants to and let go. You know deep inside
your heart that you love your mom, but not just as a daughter.
She is more to you than just a mother.
She is a sexy, sensual, desirable woman. A supremely
fuckable woman. Her beauty
and her voluptuous body turn you on. You want to be her
lover. You desire her. You
want her. You want to make love to her.”
“No,
incest is wrong! I can’t...”
“Love
is not wrong!”
Evelyn
arose
and
walked one step towards Wendy. “It’s
only wrong to deny it.”
She
took another step. Her eyes bore into Wendy’s so intensely that
Wendy turned her eyes away from the look-alike of her mother.
“Wendy!”
commanded
Evelyn. “Look
at me!”
Wendy
stopped her backward movement and reluctantly locked eyes with the
captivating
platinum blonde-haired doppelganger of her mom.
Sexual
fire started burning within the confused teen girl as erotic
attraction took hold again. Imagery from her previous brainwashings
and the
sapphic
porn videos she had watched paraded through her mind, giving her
ideas on how to sexually engage with the beautiful woman in front of
her. The teen
subconsciously
rubbed her thighs together in
an attempt
to ease some of the built-up sexual tension.
“Wendy,
I am your mother. I love you, and I know you love me as well.”
Opening
her eyes widely and shaking her head in denial, Wendy countered, “No,
you’re not my mom.”
Flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash…
“Wendy,
I am your mother...”
“Wendy,
I am your mother...”
“Wendy,
I am your mother...”
Evelynn
turned her back to Wendy and lifted up her mass of shiny platinum
hair to expose her back bra band. “Sis, Mom wants you to undo
her bra for her. She knows you want to see her breasts.”
Samantha led Wendy by the hand closer to the magnificent woman who
was seeming more every second to be her mother, Mary. While she had
never helped her mother off with her bra, Wendy saw no reason not to
and a big reason to do it, as named by her sister. Samantha placed
Wendy’s hands on the bra strap, the one Wendy had been playing
with earlier, unconsciously wanting to undo it. “Go ahead,
honey. Take her bra off. We all know how much you want to. Let her
show you her big, beautiful tits.”
Without
thought, Wendy finished what she had wanted to do before, and
unclasped Evelyn’s bra. “Oooo,” the blonde woman
squealed softly, “Wendy...so sexy...such a naughty daughter…”
Wendy pulled the shoulder straps down, Evelyn obliging to sluff them
off her arms. The skimpy red piece of lingerie slid off her smooth
skin in a faint whisper onto the floor. Evelyn released her blonde
mane, it falling heavily onto her naked back and shoulders as a
cascade of silky, ultra-pale blondeness.
Realizing
what she had done and what she was likely about to see, Wendy took a
few steps back in anticipatory awe. Then Evelyn turned around
quickly to face her, whipping her pale hair enticingly about her head
and body.
The
moment was atomically explosive for Wendy. Now that she could make
them out without obstruction, Evelyn’s breasts seized her gaze
intractably. They were colossal, lush, firm, and torpedo-like in
shape, or so it struck Wendy. While they did sag a little now that
they were no longer supported, it was not much, and that amount
struck Wendy simply as very alluring. But most mesmerizing were the
areolae, which were a magnificent three or four inches in diameter
and slightly elevated from the surrounding breast tissue, and the
nipples, which were thick, stiff, and long, all of which were painted
an intense, loud, fiery red. Evelyn’s breasts were, simply,
overwhelmingly womanly, beautiful, and powerful.
Wendy’s
jaw dropped, her mouth salivated, her face flushed, her knees
weakened, her mind went blank, and the last of her will to deny that
the glorious siren in front of her was her mother and to resist her
pussy completely melted away.
Wendy, subdued by persistent mind control and by
Evelyn’s beauty and body, was conquered.
“Wendy,
I am your mother...”
“Wendy,
I am your mother...”
“Wendy,
I am your mother...”
Evelyn
repeated the mantra as she slowly strolled
towards
the dazed teen in her lustrous red high heels,
shiny red
hose, silky red thong,
and red satin garter belt, her freed, red-tipped
breasts bouncing with her gait. Once
she was within an intimate distance, she stopped and lifted Wendy’s
chin while lightly grazing it with her long red nails.
“Mom?”
Wendy whispered.
“Yes,
dear. It’s me. I
love you, honey.”
“I
love you too,
Mom.”
Mary’s
doppelganger caressed Wendy’s cheek and hair before moving her
ruby-red lips towards Wendy’s lips for a deep kiss. Evelyn
smiled inwardly when Wendy's mouth quickly accepted her probing
tongue. "Mmmmmmmmmm," moaned the false Mary. Their tongues
twirled and flicked against each other before
Evelyn broke
the kiss. Wendy,
eyes closed and dizzy, leaned forward, obviously wanting to continue.
Evelyn, happy to oblige, closed the distance between their painted
mouths again, letting the teen make out with her for another minute.
When their mouths separated again, strands of colored saliva joined
their lips for a few of the succeeding seconds.
"Kissing
is nice, isn’t it, sweetheart?” Wendy nodded her head
absently. “That’s what mothers and daughters who love
each other always do. And more.
“Wendy...I
have a favor to ask of you.
Your dad has been away for so long...and
I have certain...needs...sexual
needs...that
I can't satisfy on my own. Besides...even
if he were here...he’s a man. Yuk, huh?”
Yeah… The issued clarified quickly for Wendy. I’d
never wish that--a man--on anyone. Definitely not on my mom.
Wendy felt compassion for her mother, a compassion mixed
thoroughly with lust, which would be typical of the kinds of emotions
Wendy would feel towards Mary going forward. An extremely hot woman
like Mom would have to have frequent sex, deep, deep sex. That was
only natural. No woman should have to depend on a man for it. How
debasing. A sexy woman like Mom deserved much better. Certainly not
a man. She deserved a woman. A splendid woman. Or a very pretty,
very sexy girl. One with a nice cock between her legs. One just
like Wendy.
“Will
you help me, honey?"
asked Evelyn as she tenderly stroked Wendy's cock. “It’s
only natural to turn to one’s daughter for such things.”
Flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash...flash…flash…
“Yes,
Mom. I’ll
do anything for you.”
From
the sofa, Samantha had been delightedly
observing the most recent actions between
Evelyn and Wendy,
while also preparing for her own role in the next act. She had put on
a white strap-on dildo attached to a pink harness and was waiting for
her turn to contribute
while
idly stroking her ivory cock. I
can’t wait to fuck you, Wendy!
“Thanks
for the help, honey.” Evelyn kissed Wendy again,
both females
making
the romantic kiss linger longer. “Let’s
get back to the sofa.” Holding Wendy’s hand and
interlocking fingers, the false Mary guided Wendy back to the sofa.
Wendy’s heart beat rapidly on the way. What
exactly was her mom asking for? Did she want Wendy to...to fuck her?
Evelyn
did not take long to make lewdly clear what she had in mind. She sat
down
first, and she immediately spread her legs invitingly for Wendy while
pulling aside her red thong with one hand and circling around her
labia with her index finger with the other. “Honey, I’m
ready whenever you are,” voiced the woman in a sensual tone.
“Fuck me.”
The
wicked proposal struck Wendy with pure excitement--even though Wendy
was the same young woman who would have viewed such an act as
absolutely unthinkable but a
few
weeks ago, and even but a few minutes before had considered it a
perversion that she could not bring herself to commit, even with
someone who was simply similar to her mother, despite being highly
tempted and desiring it deeply. But now, she could not think of any
good reason not to,
and saw a slew of convincing reasons to go ahead.
First,
she was a dirty slut and, as such, fucking
women was what she
did.
Based on
her experience with Samantha, she looooved fucking. Second,
now that she had fucked a teen girl, she very much wanted to try a
mature woman. She was highly curious what it might be
like. Third, this would be her own mother, and that would be simply
awesome. She loved her mother. Fucking her would let Mom know how
much she loved her. Mother-daughter incest, she had heard somewhere,
she thought, was the highest form of love. It was so natural for a
daughter to express her love for her mother with sex...by fucking
her. And she did love her mother, desperately. She certainly wanted
to show her love for her mom the right way and the best way. By
fucking her soundly. Fourth, her mother was in need. There was no
way she could turn her away, not a devoted daughter and a dirty slut
like herself.
She
had already fucked Samantha...who was kind of her twin sister, and a
fellow-slut, too. That had been perfectly amazing. If fucking
another female and committing incest was like that, she was all in.
And now, here was this lush woman, her own mother, of all people,
spreading her legs for her, exposing her beautiful, sopping cunt to
her--which, seeing it now for the first time, as it seemed to her,
was the most delicious thing she had ever seen--inviting her in.
This was the cunt above all others that she wanted.
Her mother’s. It was as if she had been waiting so long to
make love to her. Why had she not done this before?
Wendy
still couldn’t help but feel that fucking her mother was
naughty in some way, but that really only made it all the more
thrilling now.
She
wanted, above all other things, to fuck her. Of course she would, as
a daughter in love with her mother and as a depraved slut, fuck her
mother!
Wendy
got onto the sofa in a partial kneeling position, straddling Evelyn’s
thighs with her legs. The contact of Evelyn’s nylons,
garter straps, and skin with her own thighs sent
tingles
up Wendy’s spine. With one hand holding the glittery cock and
aiming it towards the wet hole in front of her, Wendy moved her hips
forward to push the shaft into the entrance, causing Evelyn to utter
a long erotic moan.
Pausing an inch or two
in, Wendy leaned forward to place a sweet, prolonged
kiss on her mother’s red lips. In slipped the rod an inch more.
Then she leaned in more, which very gradually sank the girl-dick inch
by exquisite inch into the steamy pussy.
Once
she had pushed the shaft to the hilt, Wendy raised her hips,
pulling it most of the way out, and then
pushed downwards again,
sinking the phallus into her perceived mom’s pussy more deeply.
Both gasped with sinful pleasure. Evelyn
wrapped her arms around Wendy’s shoulders and pulled her head
down for a wet, sloppy kiss. Wendy
loved that, and opened her mouth, seeking out her mother’s
tongue with her own.
In this moment the pretty teen knew nothing could be more exciting,
nothing could bring her more pleasure, nothing could be more
emotionally
and physically fulfilling,
nothing could be more a dream come true than fucking
her mother while making
out heavily with her.
Wendy
started to pick up the pace, falling into an erotic rhythm. Loud
moans from Evelyn
filled the room.
Both women clutched onto each other tightly as they kissed and
fucked with steepening passion, Wendy running her hands through her
supposed mother’s silky, long, pale, curled hair and over her
back and panty-clad buttocks, and also slipping her hands into her
mother’s panties to feel the skin and the
crevice
of her ass directly.
Samantha
was an avid but not a patient onlooker. Like Evelyn, she had been
carefully selected, trained, and cosmetically modified for her role
in seducing and transforming Wendy, and had even undergone some
“psychological reconstruction”. All
of this was to the end (1) that
she would click
with Wendy, have
both
a personality and
physical charms that
Wendy would love, and be Wendy’s ideal girlfriend, or one of
them;
(2) that she would resemble Wendy--not as much as Evelyn
resembled Mary, but enough that Wendy could see her as a sister, or
even as a twin sister, or even as a brunette version of herself, so
that Wendy could more readily see the example of a girl who was like
herself and yet lived a perfectly wanton lesbian life, and so that
Wendy could easily see her as a sisterly partner in incest; (3) that
she would be as completely lesbian, as wanton, as brazen, as
uninhibited, and as promiscuous as a sixteen-year-old girl could be;
(4) that she
would be comfortable and capable in the worlds of stripping and porn;
and (5) that she
would crave Wendy and her body as much as Wendy would hers.
Wendy
fucking her had been a highly anticipated zenith in Samantha’s
life
so far, and now she was going to get to drill Wendy--in the
rear--another long-awaited, destined moment of fulfillment for her was at hand.
Watching Wendy’s smooth, white, naked ass wag back and forth,
unused, as Wendy
penetrated
Evelyn’s pussy again and again, was beginning to torment her.
How she wanted to claim that beautiful ass!
I
can’t take this anymore!
Samantha got up from the sofa and moved behind Wendy. Curious, Wendy
paused
her thrusts and kissing and
looked behind her. “Don’t
mind me.
Focus
on your mom.”
Wendy turned forward and resumed pumping into Evelyn’s quim.
Samantha ran her hands over Wendy’s back. “Wendy,”
she whispered, “how do you like fucking your mom?”
“Ohh...yessss…
It’s ...woooonderfuuuulll…”
The
teen stripper leaned over, raking her tits over the skin of Wendy’s
back, kissing Wendy’s neck and cheek,
and licking her ear. “Wendy…You like me, too, don’t
you?” Wendy nodded and hummed an affirmation. “I
loved it when you fucked me. I want to fuck you, too.” Hugging
the girl around the waist,
she poked the dildo between Wendy’s ass cheeks, sending a
shockwave of delight into Wendy’s anus. Understanding that
Samantha’s offer was to give it to her in the ass as Madeline
had done, seemingly umpteen times, she at first balked, despite
wanting it,
and despite having already given Samantha permission earlier, feeling
it might be too much, even though her body craved more anal sex and
pleaded with her to agree.
“Wendy,
sweetie... how would you like a good ass fucking?”
"Umm..."
Despite her myriad experiences and mental conditioning, Wendy
hesitated to accept.
While
she had been introduced to anal sex that very afternoon, and already
knew she loved it, and was not only accustomed it but was maybe also
already addicted to it, and definitely wouldn’t mind it again,
especially if administered to her by her lovely crush, Samantha, this
would be her first time to be fucked in the ass while simultaneously
fucking another woman. Although she had seen such an act performed
several times in porn videos,
she thought it might be going too far for her.
Expecting
Wendy's hesitation, Samantha snapped her fingers, giving the signal
to activate the appropriate subliminals.
You
love being fucked in the ass, Wendy...
You
want Samantha to fuck you in the ass...
You've
fantasized about women fucking you in the ass...
You
want to be fucked in the ass with a strap-on, with fingers, and with
fists…
You
want anal sex with many women and girls…
You
love it when beautiful women and girls fuck your ass...
You
love lesbian anal sex... You love lesbian anal sex... You love
lesbian anal sex...
Sexual
fantasies
of anal intercourse appeared in her mind. First, she imagined
herself on her fours in her bed at home and behind her was her older
sister, Claire, on her knees and dressed in a wicked, studded green
leather bra and panties, green fishnet stockings with a green garter
belt,
her hair as blonde as Wendy’s, and
made up heavily with green lipstick, dark purple eyeshadow, and black
mascara. Claire was gripping Wendy's hips with her fingers with
green-painted
nails while fucking Wendy in the ass with a dark purple strap-on.
The
imagined experience of anal sex with her lovely older sister caused
her to moan with lust.
That
was succeeded by a vision of
doing a similar act with Sarah, her new best female friend. In this
version, Sarah was decked with red painted lips outlined in gold,
golden eyeshadow, red mascara, a red leather bra and panties, red
nails, red high heels, and an assortment of gold and ruby jewelry.
Protruding from her
groin into
Wendy’s anus was
a golden strap-on with red filigree. With each thrust in Wendy's ass,
the shaft pulsated with brilliant yellow light.
The desire glowing within her over this visualization caused her to
whisper, “Sarah…...ooooooo…..”
Last,
she imagined
doing anal
sex
with Madelynn, her now-goth
friend. They were both completely naked on their fours in bed,
facing away from each other. A slick black double-ended dildo
connected their assholes. Their buttocks were slapping against each
other as they rocked back and forth, alternately separating and
ramming together. Cunt juice was dripping profusely from their hot
vaginas unto the bed. This was a scenario Wendy was delighted to see
in her mind and felt destined to experience sometime in reality.
“Wendy,
honey,” Evelyn cooed, “let your sister fuck you.”
Sister?
Oh, yeah… Samantha…my twin… “What
could be more natural? A beautiful girl fucking her beautiful
sister...mmmmm...so good.”
My mother is telling me to let my sister fuck me up my ass. It
must be okay. It does sound good. Really good.
“And
she’s a sexy porn star, too, Wendy...one you are really hot
for... How could you pass that up?”
Samantha
turned Wendy’s head toward herself so they could kiss on the
lips. Evelyn
continued her matchmaking song.
“I want you to. She wants to. You want this. Then you can do
this again and again...with her...and with others...many others…”
Samantha slid her tongue into Wendy’s mouth before breaking
the kiss and reaching around to play with Wendy’s breasts
again.
“She’ll
be the first”--Evelyn ignored mentioning Madeline, about whom
Evelyn knew well, to give Wendy the impression that this was to be
another giving away of her anal virginity--”of many more
beautiful girls and women to fuck you in the ass… You’ll
loooove that… You really want this… Let pretty Samantha
fuck your cute ass, sweetheart.”
Spurred
by the fantasies and
her mother’s approval and encouragement,
Wendy looked back
at Samantha
with absolute lust,
twisted her body more toward the pretty porn star as she wrapped an
arm around Samantha’s head to pull her face closer, joined
their mouths urgently, and then
pleaded, "Yes...please,
Samantha, you fuckin’ beautiful babe… Fuck
me!"
"Sis,
I'm more than happy to do that!" Samantha grinned in triumph
while stroking the curved white shaft. She
kissed Wendy again before
Wendy turned herself back
towards
Evelyn more again and Samantha again positioned
the
tip of her strap-on into the crevice of Wendy’s derriere right
at the anal opening.
You
are becoming a lesbian sex fiend just like your sister!
Samantha
pushed
her ivory cock against and
into Wendy’s
tender
young rosebud,
making her gasp and shiver and mew.
Grasping onto Wendy’s hips tightly, Samantha started slowly
pushing the strap-on further
into
Wendy’s ass, causing Wendy to
grunt
and
whimper,
but those utterances were muffled when
Evelyn began kissing her again.
Samantha
spoke softly into Wendy’s ear as she sank the dildo deeper into
her tight anus.
“I know you have been thinking about me a lot...thinking
about how beautiful I am...thinking about my body...about how much
you like me...and want me...and wanted to meet me...and wanted to get
your hands on my body...thinking
about fucking me like the lesbian slut you are…and
wanting me to fuck you...” The brunette kissed Wendy again on
the neck and shoulder. “Now
your wish is granted…
Your dream is coming true... You
have me...the
girl of your dreams...the girl you love… You got to fuck
me...exactly like you wished...and
I also have you…
“I
like you, Wendy.... I really like you… I’m fucking you,
sweetie...because...I
want you as well…” Samantha emphasized each point with a
powerful thrust into Wendy’s ass, causing Wendy to grunt and
groan from the rough intrusion,
although the mounting enjoyment was such that she was definitely glad
that she had agreed to it. Samantha’s description of how they
felt about each other sank in as truth, and mostly was. “Do
you love what I’m doing to you?”
Wendy
separated her mouth from Evelyn’s to moan in sharp pleasure.
“Ahhh…oh!”
“What’s
that? Let me ask me ask you again: Do
you love me fucking your ass?”
“Yessssssssssss…”
replied the
panting Wendy
through gritted teeth.
“I looooove it.”
“Just
as I expected from a lesbian slut like you, Wendy!” exclaimed
Samantha with a wicked grin.
“Wendy, do you love me?”
“Ohhhhh,
yesss, Samantha… I sooo love you.”
To
reward her blonde look-alike for her expression of amour, the
stripper
stabbed her phallus to a new depth inside Wendy’s rectum,
which, in turn, pushed Wendy deeper into Evelyn’s drooling
womanhood.
“Ohhhhhh...ahhhhhhh…”
Wendy swooned. Evelyn simultaneously uttered a nearly identical moan
of surprise and passion, the two singing a mother-daughter duet of
sapphic pleasure, as it were, which impression was not lost on
either. Wendy wrapped her arms more tightly around the lovely
woman
she thought was her mother, nuzzling her face into her face and hair,
as well, before seeking out her red lips again with her own
fuschia-painted mouth.
Both
of Wendy’s hands were now busy in Evie’s panties. feeling
up the woman’s smooth, round bum. The fingers of one of her
hands had found Evie’s butt crack, were running along and in
and out of it, and a finger was starting to probe the anal hole.
“Wendy,
darling... Look at my breasts.” The blonde teen dropped her
eyes, taking in the wonderful sight now filling them. Wendy saw
their tips, red as a fire, bouncing up and down, as if dancing devilishly for
Wendy’s enjoyment, and the massive, rounded orbs of succulent
flesh swaying and jiggling. Her eyes fixated on them with immediate
hunger, causing her mouth to instantaneously water with desire. “Do
you like them?”
“Oh...Mom…
They’re...they’re so beautiful...and so...so big…”
“Your
mother’s tits are for you, my darling. Touch them. Play with
them. All you want.” Eyes big, Wendy withdrew her hands from
Evie’s panties to heft and run them over her maternal, whorish
companion’s generous knockers. She then leaned forward to
resume French-kissing the woman she thought was her mother, while
continuing to grope her large tits.
The
sofa squeaked from the intense sexual activity of the three females.
Their skin gleamed with sweat trickling down their bodies. Loud moans
and gasps filled the room. Being more practiced and experienced,
Samantha and Evelyn were
conscious of the sounds they made, making sure every utterance was
erotic, not only for Wendy’s ears,
but
for those who were watching their threesome performance as well.
Wendy
was so into Evelyn that Evelyn had to break Wendy’s ravenous
kissing to make Wendy move on
to
a different act. “Honey, the other parts of my body need
attention,
too.”
“Sure
thing, Mom. It’s just that your lips taste so good.”
“Really?
It might be because of my lipstick.” Evelyn smiled while
thinking of how she had used the very same lipstick she was wearing
now on unsuspecting aspiring female models
at
her modeling agency, which was actually a front for an adult film and
modeling talent development, placement, and production
business, an “exotic dancing” training and
booking agency, and a lesbian “escort” or prostitution service.
Evelyn specialized in
porn productions and related activities with underaged girls--despite
her assurances to Wendy to the contrary--and with
“legal”
teens, as well, although her clientele ranged widely in age and
included some more mature women, too. She also specialized in the
production of “older-younger” and incest lesbian porn
material. Her porn talent management and production and escort service business, while
lucrative and gratifying, was a side job to her activities as a
Hecate operative, and the two vocations often served purposes in
common and were run jointly,
for a mutual aim...as
was true in the case of young Wendy Love-Livingston.
This
special kind of lipstick was among Evelyn’s most prized
possessions--she owned it in several colors and flavors--and it was
also a particular source of pride in the Hecate Research and
Development Department. The colors were vibrant and the flavor and
fragrance
bold
and delicious, to the point of being most compelling. The drug in
the lipstick was formulated to be readily absorbed by lips, oral
mucosa, gums, and tongues, and was targeted to affect the brain
centers associated with the perception of pleasure, sexual
self-identity, and moral judgement. It was immediately addictive, as
well.
When
Evelyn used it, she would first take the antidote, as she and
Samantha had done this evening. Then she would either trick her
victim into applying it herself, on her own lips, or, more typically,
she would paint her own lips with it and lure the victim into an
“experimental” kiss. In
Wendy’s case, she simply pulled her extremely
vulnerable and ready victim to her into a kiss which she was
confident the girl could not and would not resist for more than a
second or two.
The
fast-acting drug would work its magic, which included instilling a
compulsion for getting more of the delicious-tasting drugged lipstick
directly from Evelyn’s lips. A hot make-out session and a
break-down of the girl’s sexual orientation and restraints
would usually ensue. With a softening of the girl’s normal
judgment, it being replaced with trust in Evelyn, Evelyn would
“encourage” the
girl into performing increasingly
risque photo shoots,
first solo and then with other girls. Evelyn or one of her more
experienced models would usually end up in bed with the girl and
introduce her to lesbian love.
Almost
all of her recruits started off as innocent straight girls whom she
had coaxed into her office for a tryout with flattery and by painting
a vision of a glamorous and lucrative career in legitimate modeling
and film jobs. By the time she was done with them, they were anything
but innocent and straight, nor was their work mainstream and
“legitimate”, although many of them did end up glamorous
and well paid. Most became models and actresses in adult
publications, films, and online sites,
some became strippers in lesbian clubs, such as this one, some
were selected to sexually serve interested female
buyers,
and some even
became
Hecate’s agents.
“Mom,
I love your lipstick...and your mouth...and you…
You look and taste and smell and feel soooo gooooood! I could just
eat you up!”
Wendy nuzzled and kissed Evelyn’s face, ear, and neck.
“You
seem to love my pussy, too...”
“Ohhhh,
yeah… I do...so much…” Wendy plunged into Evelyn
with a particularly wicked stab.
“That’s
it, baby. Show me how much you love me. Fuck me. Fuck your
mother!”
The
vigor of Wendy’s thrusts increased.
“Ohhh,
yes, sweetheart. Like that. I feel your love. In my pussy. Fuck
your mother!”
Wendy
gasped with the depraved pleasure of fucking her own mother, as she
supposed she was doing. “Ohhhh… Mmmmmm.”
Wendy
wrapped her arms around Evelyn’s neck to press their faces
together better. A brief time later, Evelyn added a new directive.
“Don’t forget about my breasts, darling. Keep feeling
them up. Go ahead…” A minute later, she added, “Wendy,
you can’t eat them, but I do have a surprise...a special treat
from your mother...just for you, my sweet daughter. Go ahead...kiss
my tits…”
The
blonde teen slid her
face between the woman’s succulent
breasts,
nuzzling them and venturing a shy kiss or two or three. “Mmmmm…
That’s nice, isn’t it? Now lick.” Wendy stuck her
tongue out, and lapped at the creamy, curvy flesh. “Wendy,
honey, do you like my nipples? Aren’t they gorgeous? Well,
they are delicious, too. Take one into your mouth…”
The teen
wrapped her fuchsia-colored lips around an erect,
red-painted nipple.
“Yes...just like that. Now lick it…”
It
did taste delicious, as Mom had promised. “And suck on
it....yes...just like that...like you did as a baby...and as a little
girl…”
Evelyn
was intent on Wendy believing that she had suckled from her mother’s
nipples long past the age of nursing, and for naughty, erotic
reasons. “Mmmmm...just like that...yes...just like you did
when you were six...and
ten...and
thirteen…
Suck them like a daughter… Suck them like a lover,
sweetheart...like my lover...like the lover you are to me... Kiss
them and lick them and suck them…
Suck
them hard, precious…”
Wendy
did kiss and lick and suck, with the impression she had been doing
this throughout her youth, and even recently. “This is the
natural confirmation of love between me and you. You do love me,
don’t you, Wendy?” Wendy, not wanting to lose the
precious red nub in her mouth, nodded enthusiastically. “Then
prove it! Suck! Suck
me and fuck me, too, darling!”
Much
to Wendy’s surprise, as
she sucked on the breast
more, warm
milk started
to spray
into her
mouth. Wendy
didn’t know what to make of it, quite, but was delighted to
receive this seeming token of her mother’s love. Wendy was
drinking her mother in, as it were. She loved the emotional and
physical sensation and the delectable taste, and how turned on the
depravity of this wanton
act was making her. She started suckling more ravenously,
alternating from one teat to the other,
while also concurrently driving her pseudo-penis all the more
passionately in and out of the erotic maternal pussy which engulfed
it.
When
Evelyn was about to come, she wrapped her arms around Wendy and
pulled the teen girl in for a deep kiss. Evelyn’s
breast milk, mixed with their blended saliva, passed between them
orally and dripped down their chins.
Both females moaned into each other’s mouths, as their cunts
erupted simultaneously in orgasm.
“MMMMMMmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmm!”
Samantha
witnessed the hard-core sapphic exchange between her new girlfriend
and her blonde talent manager with glee, elated to see Wendy’s
corruption progress so dramatically before her eyes and, as an
integral part of it, to be giving it to her deeply up the ass at this
very moment. Then she noticed the mixed female fluids leaking from
the conjoined groins of her two companions in sex. Can’t
let these precious juices go to waste!
Samantha
quickly pulled her strap-on out from Wendy’s ass. Wendy felt
the
loss in her rear and mewed,
“Nooo,
Samantha…”
“Don’t
worry, hon. We’ll do it again soon, okay?” Wendy moaned
but nodded her head, semi-satisfied by Samantha’s promise. The
teen porn star then knelt
down, lowered and angled her
head, and started to lick
the feminine cum that gushed out from Evelyn’s pussy and from
the edges of Wendy’s strap-on harness. She sucked and slid her
tongue along Evelyn’s labia while also rotating her head and
opening her mouth to catch drippings
from
Wendy’s
lovebox.
“I
love you, Mom,” panted
Wendy. Wendy
knew that the love she felt for her mother was of a different and far
deeper kind that it had been before, and she was jubilant that, with
the help of Mom and Samantha, she had found an
ideal, spectacular way
to express it. The fact was, in this moment Wendy was perfectly
enamored with her mother, physically, sexually, and emotionally--and
with Evelyn, as well, for their identities were blended within
Wendy’s current mindset--and was willing to follow the woman
into any act she might propose. “I really
love you.”
“I
love you too,
darling,”
replied Evelyn with a wide smile.
Evelyn
saw a small stencil image of a pink rose projected onto a wall
opposite of where Wendy was looking. Encore.
“Honey,
now that I know how much you love me, why don’t
you fuck me again, to prove it beyond any doubt, and to seal our
love. Let’s
do it one more time.”
Wendy
expressed her avid agreement with the suggestion by giving Evelyn
another passionate, long, sloppy
kiss. Mom,
you’re such a babe…
***********
Mary
raced
her sedan above the speed limit and
ran some stop
signs along
the way. She knew her driving was risky, but she was
so
worried
about her daughter's safety that
it overrode her
normal concern for prudent, lawful driving. Halfway there, a
stoplight
about forty
feet
ahead of her changed to a cautionary yellow. Instead
of slowing and stopping like she normally would have, Mary,
driven
by motherly concern,
slammed
down on the gas pedal to
beat the red light, which she didn’t, quite, but no police was
around to catch her.
Please
be okay, Wendy... Please be okay, Wendy... Please be okay, Wendy...
Once
she was in the downtown district, Mary was forced to reduce her speed
to
flow with
traffic. Many businesses were still open,
several of which
operated only at night. Various patrons and
vagabonds
loitered around the sidewalks, some
unruly, some
intoxicated,
some otherwise looking for trouble. Mary never came to this seamy
district, and it gave her the creeps to be there, but, on a holy
mission, she pressed on. She
made a turn from the main avenue onto
a narrower street and eventually found the club after driving three
more blocks. After
parking
in one of the nearby
parking
lots and
paying at a kiosk,
she
rushed
to the V.V.
Club,
where
she cut in front of the line of patrons, ignoring
their angry protests, but,
dismayed, was denied entry by the bouncer.
“Sorry,
ma’am. We have a dress code here.”
“What...what
do you mean? What’s wrong with the way I’m
dressed? But that doesn’t matter. This
is an emergency! My daughter,
my
teenage daughter,
is
in this
club. I’m afraid something has happened to her!”
“We
never let people younger than eighteen
enter the club and those who aren’t over twenty-one
have
to be accompanied by an adult. We always check IDs if we believe
someone might be too young to enter the club.”
“I’m
sure my daughter is in there! She made a call from this place. You
have to let me in or else... I’m calling the police!”
“Ma’am,
we have plain
clothes police
officers in there. You’ll only be wasting people’s time.”
“Please!”
begged
Mary with fervent urgency.
“Ma’am,
there’s a long line of people behind you. Please don’t
make things difficult for me.” The
bouncer carefully pulled open his black sports coat to reveal a stun
gun holstered by his side and gave Mary a look telling
her
that if she continued her course of action he would have no recourse
but to use it on her.
Willing
to risk it,
Mary was set to rush past the bouncer,
but before she could enact her desperate
plan,
Mary
felt someone grabbing her arm. She turned around and noticed that it
was a beautiful
young
woman with black
and blue hair
wearing heavy,
exotic makeup,
a
leather jacket over a blue lame crop top,
a leather
mini skirt,
fishnet
stockings,
and black mid-calf-length
leather boots.
“Don,
please forgive my friend. She didn’t mean to cause you
trouble.”
“That’s
alright,
Ms. Elena,
but please understand that I’m only doing my job. Friend or no
friend,
if
she wants to get in,
she
has to look the part.”
Mary
opened her mouth, but before she could say anything, Elena quickly
explained in a covert voice, pulling Mary close.
“I
know where your daughter is. If
you want to see her,
then
follow
me.” Roughly, Elena dragged Mary away by her arm. Once they
were down
the sidewalk far
away from the patrons, Elena stopped. Mary
noticed they were near the entrance to an alleyway.
Confused
by the situation,
Mary began to bombard Elena with questions.
“Where’s
Wendy? How do you know my daughter?”
This beauty reminded Mary of the type of foxy young woman with whom
Wendy had been keeping company of late, such as Kayla, Lauren, and
Sarah, so it occurred to Mary that she might be of the same group.
“Are
you one of her friends?”
“I’m
a friend of her friend. My name’s Elena. Don’t worry,
your daughter’s safe.”
“How
do you know she’s safe? Where is she if the bouncer said he
never lets
anyone
in under
twenty-one without
supervision into the club? I’m afraid she’s doing
something...very bad…”
“Trust
me, she’s not doing anything bad… There’s another
way into the club. Just follow me.”
“Please,
you’re not answering my questions. How do you know my daughter
is in there?
What’s
she doing?
How
do you know all this? Please,
I’m begging you!”
Letting
out a huff of air,
Elena
rolled her eyes as she reached into the inside pocket of her leather
jacket,
pulled
out a small wallet,
and flashed Mary a police badge and identification. Of course,
they were fakes, but
Mary lacked the skill to make that determination, and she
assumed that she was looking at the real McCoys.
“The
name is Officer Elena Taylor. I’m one of the undercover
officers
working this club. The reason why I know your daughter is in the club
is because I saw her go in with a girl I mentor when I’m off
duty. I saw them sneak in through the side alley entrance. She
probably got the code to that door by snooping through my cellphone
when I wasn’t looking. I was about to drag both their asses
out and teach them a lesson,
but I overheard your conversation with Don. Figure we can help each
other out.”
Elena’s
explanation made sense,
but
there was a nagging feeling in the
back of
Mary’s mind
that something was not right. She just couldn’t put her finger
on it.
While
“Officer Elena”’ had been speaking, Mary had been
scanning her face, hair, and body without realizing it, and making
buried mental notes about how attractive she found her. Mmmm…
She’s so pretty… “You
look kind of...uh..young
to be an officer.”
She meant to add “pretty”, as well, but instead just
stayed with the more neutral ”young”.
“It’s
just that …. I don’t mean to offend,
but…”
“Don’t
worry about it. Why do you think I’m working this beat?
I’m actually thirty-three,”
the twenty-one-year-old lied,
“but
a good diet, visits to the gym,
and good
genetics make
me
look very young for my age.”
Mary
nodded her head in agreement. “I’ll
say. And pretty, too,”
uttered Mary a little more pensively, finally unable to hold back her
most prominent impression of this young woman.
“I
don’t recall ever having seen a female officer as…”
Both knew that Mary was about to blurt out something to the effect
of “crushingly beautiful!”, but the mother caught
herself, blushed, and stuttered out, “Oh… I...I…”
“That’s
okay. I have that effect sometimes.” She smiled at Mary, as
if to reassure that no offense was taken, or even that Mary’s
compliment was welcome. Elena
placed a hand on Mary’s arm, as if for
reassurance, which charmed the blonde. “Forgive
my manners, ma’am. I don’t know your name.”
“Oh...uh...Mary.
Mary Love-Livingston.”
“And
your daughter’s name?”
“Wendy.
Wendy Love-Livingston.”
“Okay.
Now I know the name of the girl we’re looking for. I got a
glimpse of her. She’s a cute blonde girl, right? ”
“That’s
right…”
“Very
cute, in fact, wouldn’t you say?”
That
observation forced Mary to reflect on the prettiness of her daughter,
which became a reflection on her sexiness, as well, and on Mary’s
attraction to her. “Yes… She is...very cute…”
Mary
found herself getting lost in Elena’s eyes. She had not
expected to find such an utterly attractive young lady in this place,
especially one who would be part of the security staff. She found
herself possessed with the same feeling she had experienced earlier
in the day when talking to Kayla, one of Serena Powers’ maids,
and then later with Wendy’s friends Lauren and Sarah, a feeling
of being thrilled, enchanted, and, even, swept off her feet, a very
pleasant and seductive feeling. This young woman’s
crystal-clear blue eyes seemed so compelling, her presence so
captivating. There was even an alluring fragrance drifting from her.
Mary
wondered briefly what the young beauty’s body would be revealed
to be like in her shiny, brief top and tight leather pants if she
were to remove her leather jacket, and she quickly looked down to
scan the young lady over to try to assess the possibilities before
she looked back in the officer’s eyes. Catching herself
staring and the conversation having gone silent, Mary snapped out of
it and pursued her urgent mission, as Elena smiled within herself.
She loved turning other women on, especially vulnerable, mature, foxy
babes like this one, and she wasn’t even hardly trying...yet.
“Um…
you mentioned you knew one of my daughter’s friends.
By
chance,
can you tell me her
name?”
“Sure.
Do
you know Madelynn Goodwin?”
Mary’s
eyes went wide with shock. There was no way that the sweet,
innocent girl she had known since Wendy was five would lead her
daughter astray and into a den of sin like this...and
yet...she
had
heard rumors that Madelynn was going through a rebellious stage.
Apparently Madelynn had changed her looks to something called goth
and at times had
been defying her
mother, Erin.
Mary
now had concerns that some of Madelynn’s
new ways were starting
to rub off on her daughter. If
so, that could explain
a few things,
such as Wendy
staying out at night more frequently, her sexier clothes, her makeup,
and the rest. But, on the other hand, it wasn’t Madelynn but
Sarah with whom Wendy left earlier for a night of fun. And it was
that very cute Lauren girl,
not Madelynn, who
had come over before that to see Wendy. Were all these girls together
in the same group? But, in any case, why was Wendy now in a
nightclub with Madelynn? Did Wendy only act like she was going out
with Sarah, when she intended all along to meet up at this place with
Madelynn? Had Madelynn been coaching Wendy to lie to her mother?
Who knows, maybe the dildo Mary found actually belonged to Madelynn,
who gave it to her daughter. What could they possibly be doing with
that thing?
What
else could Wendy be hiding from her? Was Madelynn a corrupting
influence? Was she also corrupting Sarah and Lauren?
Without knowing it,
thinking
of those two young teens inadvertently caused a faint pleasant tingle
between Mary’s legs and put a warm smile on her face.
Sarah...and
Lauren… The
thought of Madelynn did not have a similar effect, since the last
time Mary had seen Madelynn, the girl had been rather frumpy. If she
did know what Madelynn looked like now, thoughts of her would have
been arousing to Mary, too.
Maybe
she should
check in on Erin,
Mary pondered, to
see how she
was doing, and to see
what she might tell her about Madelynn and Wendy,
and to offer help with the situation.
It had been a while since they had talked to each other. It would be
nice to see the pretty Erin again.
They
had a lot in common, it now seemed as she reflected on it a moment,
especially in their home
life.
Like Erin, Mary was raising a daughter by herself, it felt like to
Mary, for with Bruce gone so much and such a non-factor these days in
her home, in her life, and in her marriage,
she
was virtually single. She no longer had a real marriage, it struck
her...and perhaps that was the way she preferred it. Both she and
Erin were, for most practical purposes, single women and single
mothers. But
at
least Mary
had had
the good fortune to have her elder
daughter,
Claire,
to assist in Wendy’s upbringing
when
Claire was still attending high school,
whereas Erin
had had
to
go at it alone since her divorce from her husband, Don.
Divorce.
For some reason Mary did not understand, that word rang favorably
within her head. In some vague way, Mary found herself envying
Erin’s freedom from a man. A feeling washed over Mary that she
was to share the same marital fate as Erin...and that fate appealed
to her. Then she and Erin would be even more alike and have more in
common.
A
pleasant tingle between her legs became more noticeable
as she continued to think about
Erin.
Yes, she definitely would try and find some time to contact Erin and
see how she was doing and maybe schedule a friendly visit. They
really should take the time to get to know each other better. Much
better. Maybe that would also give her a chance to get
a look at the new version of Madelynn. Mary was curious.
She
had the same tingling feeling when she thought about Claire, as well.
Too bad Claire wasn’t around, Mary thought. She’d love
to see her again. But, while she couldn’t
visit her,
not without a cross-country trip, Mary
knew she could give her daughter a call. The prospect of hearing her
elder
daughter’s
voice again,
her cute voice, her sexy voice, was exciting,
like
the idea of getting together with the attractive Erin, and
those considerations
began to chase away some of the concerns she was feeling
about the situation with Madelynn and Wendy.
“Hello,
anyone there?”
Mary
snapped back to reality when she realized that somehow her focus had
drifted off again.
“I-I’m
sorry. I guess when you said Madelynn’s name,
I
was taken by surprise.”
“I
don’t
blame you. I met Madelynn when her mom stopped by the precinct
looking for mentor programs for her daughter. The way she tells it,
her daughter was a wholesome, sweet girl,
but I guess she started hanging
out with the wrong crowd.” Elena
conveniently left out the fact that she, Elena, was the “wrong
crowd” who had corrupted Erin’s daughter. “Hopefully
I can get her back on track. But
this, sneaking into this club, isn’t
doing Madelynn or your daughter any good.”
“So
what do you suggest?” Mary inquired.
“My
plan was
to
go in, bust them, read them the riot act,
and
drag them out in cuffs for everyone to see. But,
I’ve been reconsidering that approach.
I’m thinking that’s more likely to encourage their bad
behavior.
And now that you’re here, we have some options.”
“So
what then?”
“I
think, if you don’t mind helping me, that if we just go in,
and let me find them and pull them over to the side or find a room,
and we explain to
them that while the adult world seems very enticing,
they’re just not ready and mature enough
to
handle it.
I think two adults calmly explaining their argument might be a more
effective tool to deter this kind of behavior. Don’t you
think?”
Mary
wasn’t sure about Elena’s change
of plans, and worry
began to creep back into her mind.
Mary preferred Elena’s original plan, thinking some “tough
love” was more likely to get the attention of the girls than a
polite little chat. Plus, she thought barging into the club
suddenly, so that the girls would be taken by surprise, was more
likely to let her see what her daughter was doing inside that club
than if Officer Elena tried to find them for her and coax them to
some place for a private talk.
Mary
assumed that Wendy was most likely participating in consuming
alcoholic beverages,
but she had greater concerns, too. Was
Wendy also participating in drug use?
The
way Wendy sounded when she called her made
her wonder. Further, had Wendy been engaging
in promiscuous sex during that call? The
moans and gasps and other erotic sounds she had heard over the line
had been very suspicious. She had formed a mental image of her
daughter in a sexually compromising situation with a man,
and the thought of walking
in and catching Wendy like
that made
her sick to her gut. It was too much.
What
Mary did not understand was that the biggest reason such a
visualization was disturbing to her was the heterosexuality of her
assumption. Her conditioning at the hands of Hecate had been such
that she was now, without realizing it consciously, extremely
opposed to the idea of her daughter ever forming a romantic or sexual
bond with a man. No man could ever be good enough for her, not good
enough to even touch her. The concept of Wendy giving up some degree
of her chastity to a casual hook-up in a club was unthinkable...if
that partner was male.
Little
did she know, that would not have been true, however, if Mary had
been aware that Wendy was with girls and women only, even if she knew
they were involved sexually with her daughter. If Mary had thought
the sounds of sex she had heard over the phone were all-female,
she would not only have found herself not nearly as upset, but she
would have been subconsciously titillated by such a possibility. If
she found out that her daughter was having sex with women, that, in
fact, would have turned her on--although she likely would not have
admitted that openly at this time, not even to herself--and if she
thought that her daughter was a lesbian, or at least bi-curious, she
would have been most favorably intrigued, as it would have infused
her subconsciously with hope that she, too, as an alluring woman, had
a chance romantically with the pretty blonde teen.
One
aspect of Mary’s distaste for the idea of Wendy hooking up with
a man was related to that, in that a
liaison
with a male could well mean that Wendy was exclusively straight, and
therefore would not be open to a romantic relationship with her
mother, but would ultimately rather seek a lasting sexual bond with a
man, rather than with Mary. Subconsciously, Mary found such a
prospect alarming.
Despite
her reservations about Officer Elena’s proposal, Mary
considered her to be the more experienced one between them in dealing
with troubled teens, and yielded, although still unconvinced that
they were about to pursue the most effective plan.
“Well...uh...I...I,
uh, guess so.”
“Okay.
You ready,
partner?”
To
be considered the “partner” of this foxy young woman
struck Mary as a favored position. She absentmindedly pondered
whether being this woman’s “partner” meant more
than simply participating in her plan to find Wendy, whether there
might some hidden but exciting perks to it, maybe social perks. But
Elena was waiting for a response, so she spoke her readiness to get
started.
“I
guess…it’s
now or never.”
“Well
then. Shall we proceed?”
Elena invited, leading Mary into and down
the nearby
alley way. As
they walked, Mary became aware that this alley was dimly lit and
potentially dangerous. She took comfort in being with the beautiful
officer, who could protect her if worse came to worse, and who would
guide her safely to a more secure location. Nevertheless, she walked
behind Elena, rather than beside her, subconsciously wanting to get a
better look at her backside. The sound of Elena’s high heels
click-clacking on the pavement was the only sound in the alley as
they walked, and one which struck Mary as kind of sexy, associated as
those sounds were with those long, slim, alluring, scissoring,
fishnet-nylon-covered legs
and those seductive high heels.
However,
as
Mary followed Elena, doubts brewed in her mind. Despite
the fact that Elena told her that she was one of the undercover cops
working in the club,
Mary’s instincts
told her the woman was dangerous. The outfit and makeup
Elena were
wearing
didn’t project the image of a wholesome female. Of
course, being undercover, Mary realized, maybe that was part of the
job.
And,
despite
her doubts, she found herself strangely attracted to the woman. She
eyed Elena from the back side,
further ogling
the sexy legs and butt pushing against the tantalizing
short,
black
leather skirt. Going up, she observed how the tight leather jacket
perfectly outlined the alluring
curves
of her upper body and framed
the gentle swaying of the long,
high, blue-on-black ponytail.
For a few moments, she again
remembered having had
similar
feelings when with
Kayla,
Lauren, and Sarah earlier.
Spurred
by her sensual sentiments, Mary turned her thoughts to speculation
about what this beauty was like in private. She found she couldn’t
suppress her curiosity about the young woman’s private life,
and she asked herself questions about it,
progressing from the simply nosy to the clearly improper.
She wondered whether
Elena
was single.
Was
she in a romantic
relationship?
What was her
sexual orientation?
Did she date? Women or men or both? If the former, did she like
older women? What would it be like to date her? What if they were
there on a date together, going to the club for fun, instead of
searching for Wendy? What would it be like to kiss those full,
soft-looking, amazing, glossy blue lips? How
was
she in
bed?
What kind of underwear was she wearing...if any? What...
Wait!
What...what am I doing?! That’s out of line
and...and...tawdry! I’m not interested in girls like that!
And that’s none of my business! Why
am I thinking about these things?!
My
daughter is in danger!
I need to concentrate on her!
Mary chastised herself for having
thoughts that were inappropriate and totally incompatible with her
self-image as a conservative, straight mother, and which were
distracting from her primary purpose for being there, and,
accordingly, she
tried her best to avoid staring at Elena whenever possible--although
it was to little avail. Knowing
that she was being ogled,
Elena purposely walked
at a leisurely pace,
and with a bit more twist to her body and undulation to her ass as
she sauntered, and Mary’s eyes returned to her legs and rear
and hair and body again and again, no matter how much she tried to
resist.
Once
they reached the rear entrance, Elena punched in the passcode and let
Mary through first,
holding the door for her. As Mary passed Elena through the doorway,
Elena arched her back and leaned forward just enough for Mary’s
arm to catch on Elena’s breasts a little, causing Mary to
inhale sharply at the intimate contact, turn to gaze a second at
close range into Elena’s exotic, pretty face and eyes, and
inhale her intoxicating perfume deeply, leaving her slightly
weak-kneed.
“I
don’t want you getting lost in here. Would you mind holding
hands?” Without waiting for Mary’s response, she took
the older woman’s hand in hers.
“Oh...uh...okay.”
Elena turned around, leading the way.
As
they walked through a dimly lit passageway,
Mary not only heard the heavily muffled dance music coming from the
distant main halls of the building, but also other faint but audible
noises, which she at first could not decipher. Holding Elena’s
hand as she walked quickly gave Mary the impression that they were
there on a date, and, for a minute, she forgot her reason for being
there. Instead, she imagined that they were actually girlfriends
there at the club for a night out. Elena’s hand in hers felt
good and right and suggestive of something more to come than just
holding hands. A tingle of excitement went up and down Mary’s
back.
Immediately
she became aware that she was not dressed suitably, and wished she
had put on something flashier, including perhaps a little makeup.
Her mind then caught a vision of herself there as she could and
should be: A breathtaking sleeveless, backless halter minidress of
glittery red lame with a neckline which plunged to her navel, red
high
heels and sheer red nylons, ruby-red nails and lips, glimmering like
an inviting beacon, heavy eye makeup, blush, and hair in a
sophisticated updo, featuring a braided crown, and in three different
shades of blonde, none of them her natural honey, one lighter than
the next.
Elena
turned around and smiled at Mary, confirming Mary’s impression
and fantasy. But in the dark hallway, for a brief moment, it wasn’t
Elena’s face she saw--but Wendy’s. I’m
on a date with my daughter. I’m her date and we’re going
to this club together.
Mary wondered who had asked whom out, and,
though
surprised, she
was
thrilled with what seemed to be going on.
Elena
stopped, facing Mary, partly snapping Mary out of the fantasy. Then
Mary again noticed the sounds around her, and this time it became
evident that they were apparently coming from rooms around her and
were women moaning loudly in sex. She heard no male voices, and she
jumped to the conclusion that she was listening to lesbian sex. It
gave her a mixed reaction. For some reason, she was curious, and
wondered what the women she heard were doing to each other, but, on
the other hand, she told herself that they were probably doing evil,
illicit things.
As
she started to wonder why Elena had stopped, she heard
a strange background noise that sounded like static interspersed with
shrills and chirps. Her head started
to ache. Something didn’t feel right. Mary
looked behind her to try to see if anything there could explain what
was going on, but couldn't make anything unusual out. Turning back
around, she
saw Elena,
who was standing quite close to her now, staring
at
her with a wicked smile.
Before
Mary
could
react, Elena caught
her head in her hands, and brought her painted lips onto Mary’s
unvarnished mouth. Mary’s first reaction was surprise and
acceptance, for she had been imagining
that they were there together socially, and what was more natural for
two women on a date to do than to kiss each other? Plus, she had
also been wondering
what those beautiful blue lips would taste like, and now she was
finding them to be every bit as delectable as they had looked.
Briefly, Mary kissed back.
But
within a few moments, the reality of the situation struck Mary, her
sense of propriety kicked in, she realized this was highly
inappropriate, and she
tried to push Elena away. But Mary could not match Elena’s
strength.
Mary’s
protests were muffled by the now-forced kiss.
“Mmmmmmmmmphff!”
However,
it wasn’t long before Mary once again yielded to the kiss.
This
was the first time she had ever kissed another woman on the mouth,
especially romantically, that she knew of, but it seemed familiar, as
if she might have done something like this before, or should
have, or had wanted to.
In any case, it
was sheer heaven, no matter if
it was a new act for her or not, or whether it was right or wrong.
Her conditioning over the past twenty-four hours had primed her for a
moment exactly like this one, and overwhelmed the heterosexuality and
the moral sexual reserve she had spent a lifetime
cultivating.
When
Elena opened her mouth for tongue play, so did Mary. The kiss became
deep and passionate on both sides. They wrapped their arms around
each other.
Within
a minute, however, Mary started to feel dizzy. Soon,
she found herself losing control of her muscles,
her legs starting to give out on her, and her consciousness drifting
away. Elena caught her in her arms more securely, pulled
out her smartphone,
and
texted a message: “Red Queen is in the house.”
But,
before she could send it,
Mary, finding a last burst of awareness, energy, and resolve after
her lips had been released from the enchantment of Elena’s,
abruptly
wiggled out of the embrace
and pushed
Elena away, causing Elena to lose her
grip
on her smartphone, but Elena was able to catch
it
before
it fell on the red, white, and black tiled
vinyl floor,
and quickly pressed the “send” button.
The moment of distraction gave Mary enough time to run away from her
captor.
“Shit!”
Elena pulled out her stun gun and chased after the woman.
“Wendy?
Wendy!
Where are you?! Wenddddddddy!”
Stumbling
recklessly as fast as her fading mind and body would allow, Mary
turned a corner, but she
stopped in her tracks with a shocked expression on her face,
seeing another woman blocking her path.
Elena
caught up from behind Mary and used
this moment to press her
powered-up stun gun against Mary’s waist. At the same moment,
another hand holding a stun gun did them same to Mary’s abdomen
from
Mary’s front.
The
effect of the double discharge was immediate and dramatic.
“AAAAAAAAhhhh!” howled Mary before she collapsed into
Patricia’s
arms.
“Good
catch, Patricia. Thanks.”
“No
problem. I had a feeling Mary wasn’t someone who would go down
so easily without a fight.”
“She’s
quite a feisty one.”
“Yes,
very. I have a thing for women like her.”
“So
do I…”
“There’s
still some time left before the pickup team arrives. Are you thinking
what I’m thinking?”
“Yes....But
we
might get in trouble. Goddess has a personal interest in her. We
might have gotten
away with
this if
we had more time, or if it were someone else, but
we shouldn’t risk it with her.” Elena
glanced
around
nervously,
as
if Serena were
watching nearby,
at least through a surveillance video, which
she knew was a definite possibility. “And we really don’t
have that much time, anyway. They’ll be here in a few
minutes.”
“Awww...”
Patricia said with
disappointment
as she looked in
adoration at
the beautiful face of the unconscious woman in
her arms,
who was completely unaware of the fate that was planned
for her tonight.
“I notice she has blue lipstick smeared all over her mouth.
Looks like you couldn’t resist, either, hmmm?”
“Yeah,
I admit it.” Elena took out a tissue and wiped the
incriminating evidence from Mary’s placid face,
as well as any errant lipstick on her face, as well.
“I find her irresistible, too. And if she’s this hot
now, just think what she’ll be like when we get done with her.
But you and I shouldn’t do any more right now.”
Despite
Elena’s warning, Patricia couldn’t resist giving Mary’s
right breast a gentle squeeze, causing a weak moan to escape from the
woman’s lips.
“Fuck,
her tits feel real nice. Hard to imagine that these puppies are
natural,
without some kind of work being done,”
Patricia
said
with awe, as
she continued to grope and molest Mary’s breasts.
Wanting
to feel more of this choice MILF, and to see how much she could get
away with, Patricia started to glide her hand under under the
waistband
of Mary’s
khaki
pants toward
the soft
treasure between her legs. However, that
hand was
stopped short by
Elena grabbing her wrist.
Elena
had a
stern look on her face
and spoke with a slightly tense voice. “Please,
Patricia,
sweetie. Keep
your hands off the merchandise. Goddess wants minimal interactions
with this one.”
Patricia
playfully pulled her hand back. “Okay,
okay. Relax.
I’m just joking,”
Patricia said jovially. “Lighten
up,
you
prude.”
“Look,
any
other day I’m all for taking advantage of the situation. Being
in an empty hallway with a smokin’ hot babe, unconscious,
in the company of another horny lesbian...
BUT,
word
is that Goddess has taken an interest in the women of the
Love-Livingston family,
and
it’s best not to do anything that would bring down Goddess’s
wrath upon us.”
“Yeah,
I
get it,”
Patricia
countered in a more compliant
tone.
“If I have to,
I can
play
by the rules. Hands
off the goods unless Goddess says so.”
The
women waited,
both sharing the load of holding Mary’s slack body upright,
until
Elena’s phone made an alert sound.
After pulling it out of her jacket pocket and speaking to the
caller, Elena and Patricia dragged Mary to
the side entrance door,
which Elena opened. The awaiting retrieval team, dressed
as ambulance attendees,
carefully lifted
Mary
onto the gurney they had brought to the door and wheeled her out into
the ambulance for transfer to
the nearby brainwashing facility.
Mary
returned to consciousness
at the facility, but just barely. In her diminished state of
awareness, all
she could see were the ceiling lights above her
move
past her
rapidly.
She
tried to move her head, arms, and legs, but could not, as they were
bound to the gurney. She immediately gave up testing her restraints,
finding herself overpowered
by an absolute feeling of relaxation all throughout her body. Mary
had never felt this relaxed in all her life. She thought
she should be worried, concerned,
and
even afraid,
but couldn't muster any of those feelings. Instead,
she felt good, and basked in
the feeling.
Still, she was curious
about what
was going on.
“W-where
am I-I?” Mary queried
to no one in particular
in a slurred toned.
The
face of a cute blonde, who was walking alongside her, appeared over
her.
“Nothing to worry about,
Ms. Love-Livingston.
We’re just rushing you to get some much needed treatment,”
assured
the female attendant. Mary
scanned her over
through her blur,
attracted and interested.
She was dressed in a sexy latex
nurse’s outfit,
the kind one would
find at a Halloween
costume store.
Her light
blonde locks were done in an updo bun style and
her face was made up dramatically.
Her noteworthy breasts, packed into the tight, white uniform, bounced
as she strode with the gurney towards its destination.
“Who...who
are you?”
“My
name’s Jennifer.” The girl smiled prettily. “I’m
here to help you.”
“I-I-Is
s-s-something w-w-wrong with me?” asked Mary.
“You
could say that,
but we’re going to fix what’s wrong with you,
Ms. Love-Livingston. Just relax, ma’am,”
the
attendant suggested.
“We have
everything taken care of.”
“Will
you...will you stay with me?”
“Part
of the time…”
“Can
I… Do you think I could see you...again?” Mary’s
drugged state had lowered her inhibitions and allowed some of the
homosexuality already programmed into her to rise to the surface.
Jennifer
understood, happily so, that Mary was attracted to her--not
surprisingly, either, considering her appearance, which she knew was
hot, and the brainwashing to which Mary had already been
subjected--but also that Mary wasn’t really hitting on her,
quite, either, that the woman wasn’t that far along in her
transformation to know how to do that, but she decided to have a
little fun with this delicious MILF just the same.
“Hmmm,
Ms. Love-Livingston. Are you asking me out?” Jennifer would
have readily accepted a proposal to date a woman like Mary, if she
wasn’t constrained by her professional circumstances, and, now
that Jennifer had flirtatiously delineated the possibility, Mary
liked the idea, too. In whatever form it might take, she did want to
see this fetching young woman again.
In
response to the blonde nurse’s playful question, Mary
let
out a soft giggle, and then felt a prick in the side of
her neck. As she
felt sleep overcome her, she tried to pursue
her conversation with Jennifer, wishing to secure some way of seeing
the sexy
nurse again, but she
found no voice for it, and she
passed out.
Hmmmm…
I wouldn’t mind seeing this fox again, either...maybe
even...socially... I’m not supposed to fraternize with the
subjects...especially this one… I definitely don’t want
to get in trouble with Goddess...but...maybe something...is
possible...
Mary
was wheeled into a large operating theater,
but she was not the only “patient” there. Already
in the theater was Erin, stripped naked and lying on
her own gurney, her breasts
contained in stimulatory cups and her
legs in
stirrups and
spread apart, with a pair of robotic arms probing
her pussy and ass.
Her
head was enclosed in a sleek white helmet, from which numerous cables
sprang and connected to various computers on the desk next to her.
Moans
of pleasure escaped
her mouth.
Mary
received the same treatment Erin had gotten not long before, as
the attendants cut away
her
clothes,
exposing
her body,
and then gently transferred
her nude body
onto a gurney next to Erin’s, leaving the two bodies parallel.
Shortly Mary was fixed in a posture and hooked up similar
to her neighbor:
helmet
over
her head with
various lines and tubes connected, breasts in special cups, legs
in
stirrups,
her intimate areas exposed, and a set of robotic arms extending
their
phallic attachments into the
two openings between her legs. The
technicians also connected wires and tubes directly between Mary and
Erin, to facilitate one phase of the brainwashing that would be
common to the two motherly women, after which the two would ever
after be coupled to each other in ways they never dreamed they would
be.
Mary
let out a series of soft grunts as her
sleeping body felt
the
cups clamp onto her breasts and the
robotic arms start
their preliminary invasion of
her cunt and ass with their dildo attachments,
reacting to
the erotic stimulation.
Mary
found herself to be out in the middle of
a
heavily wooded area,
seemingly far away from civilization. She was
in a clearing, surrounded by trees, and it was night. She felt a bit
of panic as she had no idea how she got there
and being alone in the woods at night was not her definition of fun.
Then,
out of the blue,
Mary
saw a pair of bright headlights coming
up a dirt trail towards her.
Mary drew up her right hand to shield her eyes from the blinding
lights bearing down on her. Then the vehicle stopped a few feet away
from her and its
light turned off.
“H-h-hello,
who’s there?” Mary asked.
The
driver-side door opened.
A
mysterious figure stepped out and asked,
“Mary… Mary Love?…
Is
that you?”
Mary
still couldn’t identify who the driver was,
as she seemed to be
in shadows, but
the voice was feminine, alluring, and sounded very familiar,
as if she knew the person.
“Y-yes,
my name is Mary. Who are you?” Mary asked cautiously.
Then
suddenly the figure rushed towards her.
Mary
started to raise her arms to shield herself, supposing that the
mystery figure might
assault her,
but,
to her surprise,
she
found herself in
an embrace, being hugged exuberantly and affectionately.
“Oh,
Mary! My love!” Mary felt her face being kissed ardently.
She
liked it, but was mystified as to who this was who
seemed to love her so much.
From
the physical contact
and
the pitch of the voice, Mary
was able to substantiate
a few
details
about the mystery person. One, she was definitely
female,
as
Mary could feel her mystery hugger’s breasts press against
hers.
That
felt good, and Mary found herself hugging the woman
back, mainly to feel the unknown woman’s breasts on her own
better.
Her
lips were also soft, like a woman’s. Mary
wondered what they would be like on her own lips and considered
turning her head a little to find out, but then she
decided doing that with someone whose identity wasn’t known to
her would not be appropriate. Two,
Mary could swear she should know this person, as if they had
met before.
And
three, this situation was familiar,
as if she had been in it before.
“Thank
Goddess I finally found you!” the
mysterious woman exclaimed.
“Um…
I’m sorry,
but do I know you?” asked
the confused mother.
“Oh
my Goddess, Mary,
I can't believe… Are
you telling me that you forgot all about me?…
It’s me, Shelly!” the
woman exclaimed.
Then
recognition hit Mary hard as the identity
of this mystery woman finally clicked. Standing
in her arms was
a friend she believed she had lost. Mary took a step back,
with
her hands on the woman’s shoulders,
to
have a look at her. At
the same time, the moon broke through the clouds, casting moonlight
bright enough to illuminate her companion well. This was Shelly,
indeed, but all grown up. She appeared to be in her late
twenties--which, if Mary had been thinking clearly, she would have
known to be impossible, as the real Shelly was Mary’s age, and
would have been pushing
age forty by now. But
this twenty-something version
of Shelly was
fully
developed and ripe in her beauty, in a most alluring way.
There
had been some changes from the young, simple girl she had known. She
still had a long mane of glossy black hair,
but it was longer, to her tailbone
instead of waist-length,
and
styled and colored as it had never been as a young teen, in a half
ponytail and curled, with bangs that were curled inward,
with
the base color now being a pronounced bluish-black
which was
streaked through enticingly with swaths
of
hot pink and silver. Her ears were adorned with long, dangling
earrings of pearls and fine chains, and she wore other other jewelry,
as well, including a pearl and silver piercing in her belly button,
plus she sported a couple of discrete tattoos, one of a large red
rose on her right buttocks, part of which was visible above the
low-riding waistband of her tight hot pants, and another being a
wreath of green leaves and small, multi-colored flowers encircling
her upper left arm. Her
eyes were
adorned with sky blue
eyeshadow
and matte
black
eyeliner,
and her
eyelashes were
curled thick with mascara. Shelly’s lips were
coated
in a lively ruby-red
lipstick,
and her long nails matched. She worn shiny black vinyl hot pants,
silver high heels and a silver satin halter top which showcased her
large, mature breasts,
which hung in her lustrous top obviously unencumbered
by a bra.
She was taller than as a youth, her hips were wider, and her ass
rounder and fuller.
But,
underneath it all, standing
before her
was
the same free-spirited girl
with whom Mary had fallen in love
as
a young teenager.
“Wow,
Shelly… You certainly...uh...developed…”
“In
all the right places…?”
“Yes!”
Mary exclaimed as she scanned her first girlfriend...her first
lesbian girlfriend. “You...you’re...just so…”
She almost blurted out “sexy”, but didn’t.
“Beautiful!”
“Why,
thank you. You turned out pretty hot yourself.”
Tears
welled up in Mary’s eyes as she pulled
her friend back in to reciprocate her embrace. “Shelly…
Shelly… I...I
can’t believe it’s you!........... But...but wait…”
Again Mary stepped back with her hands remaining on
her friend’s arms. “You died…didn’t you?
How...how...?” Mary
was stunned by the resurrection of her long lost friend.
“Who
told you that bullshit lie?” exclaimed Shelly.
“Maggie
Wilcox…”
“Gabby
Maggie?!
Of all people,
you chose to
believe her?!
You took
the
word of somebody
who blabs all day and can’t keep her facts straight?!”
Mary
winced at her friend’s accusation,
and felt the need to explain herself. “You
can’t blame me. After all,
after
you
moved away,
you never returned my calls or responded to my letters. What was I
to assume?”
Shelly
let out a sigh, turning her gaze upwards towards the sky. She gently
took hold of Mary’s hand and led
her
to the hood of her car. Jumping
up to take
a seat on top of it,
Shelly
patted on the spot next to her,
encouraging
her beautiful,
beloved
friend to join her,
which she did. When
the cool
metal of the
hood gave her legs a chill, she looked down to see how
she was dressed, and was disarmed by the sight. Like Shelley, she
was wearing hot pants, for the first time in her life, that she knew
of, except hers were of gold satin. They were very tight, showing
off her cameltoe, and it felt like she had no panties on. Her
spaghetti-strap, belly-exposing cropped top was also satin but
midnight blue. Her braless state, like Shelly’s, was on clear
display, as her breasts swayed freely under the shiny material and
her nipples poked through provocatively. She thought she had never
dressed like this before, and was a little embarrassed at first, but
then she saw Shelly eyeing her breasts, and noted that Shelly’s
attire was not much different, so she concluded there was nothing
wrong with this.
“Well,
you have my parents to thank for that.”
“What?”
Mary
knew Shelly’s mother had wanted to break them up, but she was
stunned that Shelly’s parents would prevent their daughter from
having any contact with a dear friend.
“Mary,
remember
when my
mother
caught us on a night just like this?
Us,
naked. Me, asking you to take my virginity with that strap-on. Then,
just before we could, she showed up and took me away, denying
us of our love for each other.”
Mary
only nodded her head as the fictional version which her friend
recounted awakened
more fully
the fabricated memory that had been implanted into her mind the
previous night
after
her dinner with the foxy Serena Powers. Mary’s
mind and body relived the emotions and lusts she had supposedly felt
on that eventful night--being naked with her pretty lesbian
girlfriend, and in love with her, and about to fuck her--and during
that time period generally, as well, when, as a teen, she fell
for
a
girl
and embarked on a sexual relationship with her, and started to become
a lesbian. The revisiting of those days stoked
the lust in Mary’s
body and further solidified the falsehood as fact in
her mind.
“Well,
my parents weren’t too
keen on having a gay daughter.
And
they thought you were a bad influence on me,
that you were a lesbian intent on seducing me and pulling me into
your own evil lifestyle. I tried to explain to them that it was me
just as much as you, and that I loved you, but I couldn’t get
through to them. They
never told me that you called and must
have destroyed
the letters you wrote me. They
also told me that your family moved far away and didn’t leave a
forwarding address or phone number. I believed them, because they
were, after all, my parents. I didn’t think they would lie to
me like that.” Shelly
slid
her left hand onto
Mary’s bare
right thigh and gave it a gentle squeeze, causing Mary to let out a
soft moan.
She
felt her inner thigh quiver and her nearby
womanhood
get wet from the gentle,
intimate, feminine
contact.
“So that’s
why you never heard back from me.”
Mary
herself was speechless at her friend’s revelation of the reason
why she never heard from her friend after she moved away.
‘“Well,
eventually I
had enough of their bullshit and decided
to run away. I took
some cash and stole their car. That
night I was trying to make my way back to you, Mary, my sexy
girlfriend,
so
we could run away together as lovers. Because
I was in love with you. Like I still am.”
‘“Oh,
Shelly,”
Mary said tearfully as her friend’s admission of love struck
her in the heart.
They
gazed into each
other’s eyes adoringly, while one of Shelly’s hands held
both of Mary’s and Shelly’s other hand continued to
caress Mary’s thigh not far from Mary’s wet pussy. Mary
felt strongly like leaning forward and kissing her lovely friend on
her inviting red lips.
“That’s
when I got into the accident.
It
looked like it was the last straw,
as my parents had me committed to a mental asylum. They cut me off
from the outside world and
told everyone
that I had died in that wreck. Keeping
me in that institution, they hoped that they
could shock, beat, and prescribe the gay away.
“When
I finally got out,
I was in a very bad place. I was bouncing from one menial job to
another. My identity changed into something I wasn’t,
just for the sake of antiquated values.” Mary
found herself commiserating with Shelly’s anger at the
torment she endured from her parents’ attempts to correct her
homosexual behavior,
and at the years of separation when she and Shelly otherwise could
have been together.
“I finally regained my senses and
started to
put my life back together. I’m
in a good place now and really like what I do.”
“Oh?
What do you do now?”
“I’m
an exotic dancer.” She
means a stripper.
“And I’m into other forms of adult entertainment...you
know, layouts…” She
means porn magazines.
“...and sometimes acting, as well.” She
means
porn videos.
“All of it woman-on-woman
stuff...and the clubs I perform in are all all-female. Doing
anything like that with men or for men would give me the creeps.”
Wow.
Shelly’s really adventurous. I wonder if...if it’s hard
to find a magazine or DVD that’s she been in…
How...Where
would you
get that kind of stuff?… The
gears in Mary’s mind started turning about where and how she
might find some of the porn Shelly had been in.
“And
you like it?”
“I
love it. Do you remember how you used to be so fascinated by that
strip joint we’d pass on the bus back home?”
“Me?
I..I…”
“Yes,
you faker. I saw your face. Especially when we passed the big
pictures they had on the building of the various strippers inside.
You couldn’t tear your eyes away. I saw you. That’s
okay. You don’t have to admit it, but we both know it. Well,
now I’m one of those ladies. You should come by sometime and
catch my act. I’d even throw in a free lap dance afterwards.
In private.”
Indeed,
Mary’s memory,
a fake one, was
that she had been fascinated by the strip joint and strippers and had
always wanted to enter a place like that,
see whatever kind of show
they put on,
and
meet some strippers. And now her best friend from childhood was part
of that world.
Mary
was still
highly intrigued.
“Uh…...Okay…
I’d like that.”
“Great.
I’ll look forward to it. Maybe I’ll get you to try
doing a little show on stage, too.
Together
with me, if you like.”
“Oh,
uh, well, I...I don’t…”
”You
know what really hurts,
Mary?”
Shelly’s
question sent an uncomfortable chill up her spine.
“You!”
Mary’s
eyes went wide at her friend’s
accusation. How
was she responsible for her friend’s troubles? She
felt her temper
flare a little in
response.
“Me?
Now listen here,
Shelly. What happened to you wasn’t
fair, but
you can’t blame me for what happened!”
“You
betrayed me,
Mary.
You forgot about me! When I found out where you were,
I also
discovered
that you were
married… to a man,
no less! You
must have completely forgotten
about our time together
and
our declaration of love,
and our discovery together that we are lesbians. I could understand a
little better if you had found another woman to marry, but you just
turned your back on what you really are. You are a lesbian,
Mary! But you married a man! How could you?!”
Shelly
had
just made some valid points, it seemed to Mary. Why did she marry a
man, when she loved girls? And it wasn’t as if her mainstream
heterosexual marriage had worked out so well for her. She didn’t
love him, after all these years. She couldn’t stand him,
really. She felt like divorcing him.
Mary
felt that she had to offer up some
explanation
to defend herself.
“Shelly, please understand that back then it wasn’t
proper
ladylike behavior to have those kind of feelings and desires. A
good girl just didn’t run off and marry another girl. It just
wasn’t done! You were supposed to find a man and...”
“Dammit,
Mary!
Couldn’t
you have had
a backbone of your own?!”
rebuked
Shelly
as she slid
off
the hood of the car,
to pace
back and forth in frustration. “Aren’t
you saying
that what we had wasn’t worth it?
That you didn’t enjoy what we had?
That you couldn’t have fought for it more, and waited for it
longer? I’m talking about love with a woman. If not with me,
then at least with another woman.”
Mary
just sat there confused,
feeling guilty and unsure
how to respond to her friend. “I-I-I’m… not…”
Mary tried to get some
words out, but felt them stick
in her throat.
Shelly
walked up to her, clasped Mary’s hands in her own, and looked
adoringly and intensely into Mary’s face. Mary, however, was
soon distracted by Shelly’s breasts. Because her perch on the
car positioned her higher than Shelly, she found she had a good
view--too good a view--down into the wide, deep v-neck of Shelly’s
skimpy, silver halter top.
Her heart beat rapidly
as she eyed
the seductive valley between her friend’s beautiful,
fully-developed
tits,
stirring
feelings of desire and also
of
regret
in
having been denied
consummatory
sex with her true love. She
had yearned, she now clearly felt, to take the
virginity of the young teenage girl who
had been her friend, and then who became her lesbian girlfriend. As
she searched her feelings, she found that she still wanted that,
wanted to fuck a girl, and wanted Shelly, now as much as she wanted
it and
wanted her then.
Mary
leapt
off the hood of the car and wrapped her arms around Shelly. The
fabricated memories of that night produced by Hecate,
along with it’s keen emotions, desires, and lusts, came
rushing into her mind with
full force, triggering
euphoric feelings within her body. Unable
to resist Shelly’s beckoning, candied lips any longer, Mary
kissed them. They were arousingly delicious.
“Yes,
it was. It was worth it. I
never should have married a man. I should have waited for the right
woman. If I had known you were alive, I would have found you, and
married
you!
I’m so sorry, Shelly.
Can
you ever forgive me?
I never
meant to forget about you…about
us.
It’s just…
I don’t know… How could I...”
Shelly
sultrily
slid
her finger onto Mary’s lips and
gave
her a look assuring her both
that
all was forgiven and
that she was still very hot for Mary.
“Mary,
you know I can never stay angry with you. You’re my sexy
girlfriend. Now give mama some sugar,
baby.” Upon saying this,
Shelly
took
Mary’s head in her hands, leaned
in, and planted a sensual kiss on Mary’s lips.
Mary
moaned and
parted her lips, inviting a deeper blending of their mouths,
whereupon she
felt Shelly’s tongue accept
the invitation by invading
her mouth
and
exploring her oral cavity,
as
Shelly’s hands groped her body. When she felt her friend’s
hands roam over her ass and give it a firm grope, Mary
reacted by pressing
herself into Shelly’s body,
finding delight in the collision of female contours. As their
kissing deepened, she slid her hands up to and inside Shelly’s
shiny silver top onto the womanly melons seeming to just be waiting
for her exploring, caressing hands.
“My
beautiful Mary… Yes, some years have passed...and we missed
out on some good times with each other...but that doesn’t have
to dictate our future course. We are together again now. We love
each other. We are lesbians. If you want, we can be girlfriends
again. We can make love. And whenever you are ready to dump that
loser husband of yours, we can make it official. Would you like
that? Would you divorce your husband for me?”
Mary
realized she had been considering taking the step of getting rid of
Bruce, once and for all. What a dead weight he was in her life. The
years she had wasted with him! But it was not too late to fix that
problem.
“Yes,
Shelly. I want that. I want you! I’ll divorce that toad.
Then we can be together forever! But, until then, why don’t
you and I...um...you know...do it?”
“So,
Mary,
my sweetheart…want
to pick up where we
left off last time?”
Shelly
asked with a sly smile.
“Before
we were so
rudely interrupted?”
Lust
for Shelly was
intense
within Mary’s body. Her nipples were
erect
and hard, her pussy was
wet
and pulsing with want and desire, and
her
heart was
racing
with giddy joy in anticipation of
sapphic
orgasmic pleasure. Mary nodded her head,
indicating
to her friend that she was willing to continue their tryst in the
woods that was interrupted so many years ago.
Both
women stood up and began to disrobe in front of each other,
taking
sneak peeks at one another. Mary made
sure she got a good look at the
shapely curves of Shelly’s body.
When
her eyes met Shelly’s,
her
friend responded with a sly smile,
knowing what was going to happen between the two and
the anticipation they both were feeling about it.
At
last
Mary stood naked, the refreshing night air caressing her nude form.
It
felt so right, the moment so beautiful. She felt so ready, eagerly
anticipating the culminating
act of sapphic love in which she
and Shelly were
about to engage.
“Wait
a minute. We’re
lacking the one thing we need to
make this night perfect,” Shelly said coyly.
Rushing
over to the sedan, Shelly opened the backseat passenger door and
leaned in,
giving
Mary a marvelous view of her shapely ass
and her wet, ready pussy, further
enticing Mary into wanting to engage in lesbian sexual intercourse
with
her this very night. That
ass...that pussy...I’m going to be fucking that...in just a
minute…..mmmmm.
It
made Mary realize how beautifully and voluptuously Shelly had
developed as an adult woman, and how much she, Mary, had missed out
by not having had her...by not having married her.
Wow! Shelly became such a fox!
Looks
like I missed out on a great thing. If
only I had not lost her. If only I had married her. I could have
had this...her...this sexy, lovely woman...this beautiful, sexy
pussy...all along, Mary
thought to herself as she continued to leer at Shelly’s nude
body.
“Here
we go!” Shelly squealed
with
eager glee as she walked back from the car with
a strap-on dildo in her left hand. In fact, it was
the
strap-on
dildo,
the very one that Mary had been wearing
that fateful night when Shelly was taken away from her.
“May
I have the honor?”
Shelly requested
in
an amorous tone.
Mary
nodded her head,
approving Shelly’s request. She
saw
Shelly kneel
down
to
loop the straps up Mary’s legs. But Shelly’s face paused
at eye-level with Mary’s groin.
She
stared at Mary’s wet cunt,
making
Mary’s heart
skip a beat.
Mary
saw her friend lick her lips like a child
eyeing a delicious piece of cake. Obviously
unable and disinclined to
resist, Shelly
leaned forward, sticking her nose in Mary’s bush and taking a
deep whiff, before kissing her pussy lips and taking several good
licks. Mary gasped with the brief, sharp pleasure. Shelly then left
Mary’s quivering vulva
and
continued on to her primary task. She uttered “another time”
softly, but loudly enough for Mary to hear and to be excited about
her future encounters with her lesbian girlfriend. She knew she
wanted more attention to her pussy, much more, from Shelly’s
red mouth.
Mary
felt Shelly place her soft,
feminine hand on
the
back of the blonde’s
right
thigh to nudge it forward. She lifted her right leg as Shelly placed
the loop of the strap-on harness through her right leg,
then
they
repeated the same process for the left.
Shelly
shimmied the fake cock up her legs towards Mary’s
sexy maternal hips
and
centered it in her crotch. Mary
felt Shelly grope and feel her ass as she fastened and secured the
harness and straps around her waist. Mary
looked down, aroused at the appearance of having a cock projecting
from her groin like a man, despite being a woman, endowing her
with the power to fuck a woman’s pussy. It was a power she
found herself relishing.
“There.
We’re all set,”
Shelly
observed with satisfaction as she flicked the fake erect cock with
her finger.
“Nice
and secure. There’s just one more thing and everything will be
perfect,”
Shelly declared with glee, arising to her feet and taking a couple of
steps away from Mary.
Shelly
started
doing a playful
twirl in front of Mary. As she stared at the
naked
Shelly spin
seductively
in front of her,
Mary saw Shelly’s body begin
to change. She saw Shelly’s
height decrease, her arms and legs shorten, her body and limbs become
slimmer and softer, her facial features become more childlike--such
as her nose and jaw and other facial bones shrinking
some, a slight amount of “baby fat” filling
in hollows, and her skin polishing
up to perfect smoothness--and her curves flatten, not completely, but
noticeably. Her
areolae and nipples became smaller and lightened
from a deep, dark reddish-brown
to a medium-light beige-pink color.
When
Shelly
came
to a stop,
Mary’s
eyes went wide. The adult Shelly was gone and in her place was the
fourteen-year-old Shelly
from
many years in the past--the young teen girl with whom she went to
school, did homework,
and hung out,
the one with whom she secretly shared lesbian porn novels and DVDs,
the one who
was her first kiss and
her first love, the one with whom she first explored lesbian sex, the
one to whom she pledged her
heart,
the one who offered her virginity to her.
Her nude teenage body--and this wasn’t the first time Mary had
seen it--was as flawless and as enticing
as ever.
“Do
you like?” Shelly asked,
in a lighter, girlish voice and with
a mischievous grin,
running her hands over her little breasts and along her slim hips.
If
Mary had been worked up with lust before, she found that she was even
more aroused by this childish version of her friend,
as prompted by the chemical, mechanical, and electrical stimuli
working on her unconscious body in the Hecate facility.
Not only was this the body and the girl who ushered her into her
first desire for her own gender, which had left an indelible love for
Shelly
in her heart, but in this moment Mary became aware of a new hunger in
her soul, one of which she had previously been unaware, a hunger for
the flesh of young women and girls--pubescent girls,
tweens, young
teens, older teens, and other young women.
It
mattered little, as long as they were young.
In
this moment, she was feeling it keenly, and was drawn to this girl
even more than she had been to the adult Shelly. It wasn’t
despite
the flattened curves--it was because
of them.
The childish voice, the little tits jiggling on the smooth, narrowed
chest, the tiny waist, the slim, girlish hips and rear, the small,
clean, tight, virginal pussy on display--all of this girlish body
called to her to feel and to kiss it all over, to violate it, to
ravage it, to consume it--and to fuck it. Mary didn’t know why
she felt this way, and knew what she was feeling was depraved, but
that in no way lessened her desire for this petite teen body. She
had wanted it when she was a young teen of the same age,
her altered
memory convinced
her, and
she wanted it now,
even more so. Mary
knew she would fuck this girl, right or wrong, as she had planned to
fuck her adult version.
“Yes…
I definitely like…” Mary stuttered in
a stunned fashion after
her friend had
de-aged before her eyes. “But...but
S-s-shelly…
how?”
The
teenage Shelly,
who had retained the makeup, jewelry, and tattoos of her adult
version,
while her hair kept the same half-pony-tail style but
switched to a solid
black color,
walked
up to Mary,
placed
her youthful arms around her adult lover,
and
placed a sensual kiss on her lips, Mary still surprised by Shelly’s
transformation to her younger form. Mary was taken off guard by the
kiss, but as Shelly continued to explore Mary’s mouth and her
teenage hands roamed all over Mary’s body,
she started, hesitantly, to kiss back.
A
set of audible subliminal messages played and drilled themselves into
Mary’s mind, which in turn caused her to relax, to enjoy the
kiss with the younger version of
her beloved girlfriend, and, shortly, to open her mouth to explore
her girlish companion’s fresh mouth with her tongue.
Mary,
you are a lesbian.
Mary,
you find yourself attracted to younger women.
Mary,
young girls and women are sexy.
Mary,
teen girls and young women are happier when they are lesbians and are
having lesbian sex.
Mary,
you want to seduce teenage girls into becoming lesbians.
Mary,
you want to fuck young girls.
Mary,
you want to take the virginity
of young females.
Mary,
you find young
teenagers, high school girls, and college freshman coeds
highly attractive and arousing.
Mary,
you think having a teenage girl as a lover is exciting.
Mary,
you have a teenage daughter
who could be your girlfriend and your lover.
Mary,
you would be very happy if Wendy would become a lesbian.
Mary,
you want to seduce Wendy into becoming a lesbian.
Mary,
you also find Wendy’s friends, Sarah, Madelynn, Lauren,
Cynthia, and Kayla, attractive
and
exciting and sexually desirable.
Mary,
you want to date and have sex with Wendy’s friends.
Mary,
you are actually dating Lauren.
Mary,
you are in a sexual relationship with Lauren.
Mary,
you have had lesbian sex with Lauren, and you loved it.
Mary,
you will have sex with Lauren again and again, because she turns you
on, you desire her beautiful young body, and she is your lesbian
lover.
Mary,
you support lesbian
incest.
Mary,
love and sex between female family members is a good and beautiful
thing.
Mary,
you are completely okay with lesbian incest relationships.
Mary,
mothers and daughters should date and engage in lesbian sex.
Mary,
you want to date your daughter Wendy.
Mary,
you want to be in a romantic,
sexual lesbian relationship
with Wendy.
Mary,
you want to fuck your daughter Wendy.
Mary,
you want to marry your daughter Wendy.
Mary,
you want to fuck your daughter Claire, too.
Mary,
you want both of your daughters to be avid lesbians.
Mary,
you will encourage your daughters to fuck each other.
Mary,
you want to watch your daughters fuck each other.
Mary,
you want to have a threesome with your sexy daughters.
Mary,
very young teenage girls are hot.
Mary,
you find the slim, developing bodies of young girls highly arousing.
Mary,
the little breasts and slender, undeveloped bodies of girls in their
early teen years turn you on.
Mary,
you know it is perverted, but you cannot help yourself; you are
absolutely crazy about young teen girls. You love them and their
bodies with a mad sexual and romantic love, you consider dating them
to be not only acceptable but most desirable, and you want sex with
them more than you want air or food or water.
Mary,
you love Shelly, an undeveloped young teen girl, even more than you
like her as a fully-developed woman.
Mary,
you know your obsession with young girls makes you twisted, but you
can’t help yourself.
Mary,
you actually like being a depraved pervert who is obsessed with young
teen girls. It feels really good.
When
the subliminals played out,
Mary
slowly came out of the haze into
which
they
had
placed her.
She came to with Shelly’s arms
wrapped
around her waist and
hers around Shelly’s shoulders and back, both naked, facing
each other, their mouths joined, and their smooth bodies pressing one
into the other. Blinking her eyes a few times and breaking the kiss
to reorient herself, Mary found Shelly’s
beautiful eyes looking into hers,
those pretty blue eyes pleading
with
her to fulfill the act that they had been denied in
their teen years, as the
manufactured memory declared
and as Mary believed.
“You
do want to fuck me, don’t you, Mary?”
“Uh...yes...of
course I do!” Mary then once again took in the girl’s
youth and a ray of conscience pierced her dizzy mind. “I
do...but...but you’re so…”
“If
you’re feeling uncomfortable with fucking me,”
Shelly said in a soft, seductive whisper,
“I
can
help you with that. Let
me slip into something more comfortable.”
Disengaging herself from Mary. Shelly stepped back and snapped her
fingers. Mary’s eyes went wide as she witnessed Shelly’s
body change again. The skin took on a bronzed, tanned coloring. Her
long, silky black hair loosened from its half-ponytail style, the
bangs disappeared, it lightened to a rich, dark brown, it become even
glossier and thicker than before, and sensual waves and curls
appeared.
After
Shelly’s transformation,
Mary stood in awe once more. Her long-time friend was gone, as the
girl with her had now taken on the appearance of a very sexy Hispanic
teen. Mary
recognized her, and that recognition caused her pulse to race in
excitement and a thrill to pass through her body.
“Hey
there,
Mary.
Remember
me?”
“L-L-Lauren…
?”
“Awww,
you do remember me. Then again,
what
woman
ever forgets her first lover?
And her first fuck?”
Lauren queried
rhetorically
with
a charming smile.
“Wait…
What
happened? Where’s Shelly?” asked Mary in a confused tone.
“We
were about to...”
“To
what? Fuck? You do like ‘em young, don’t you, sweetie?
But, what about me? You
don’t like what you see?” Lauren gestured to her nude
body,
displaying it for
Mary to see in all its eye-catching, glory. And,
since
Lauren had had her hair pulled back in a high ponytail when she had
seduced Mary in real life earlier that day, Mary had not yet seen the
Latina with her hair down and glorious, as it now was, which added to
Mary’s current fascination with the young beauty before her.
Mary’s
eyes
drank
in the sight of the nude Latina teen in front of her,
unable
to deny the arousal she was feeling. Mary let her mental guard down
as Lauren walked up
to the equally naked mature woman standing before her. Each step the
hottie Latina teen took towards her caused a
quickening of her pulse, a shortness
of breath, and a giddy rush of joy and
lust. Mary’s
eyes glued to the
sway of Lauren’s hips,
the
bewitching jiggle
of the teen’s
exquisite breasts,
and the clean baldness and glistening beauty
of the pussy between her legs.
Closing
the distance between them,
Lauren
wrapped her arms around Mary’s neck,
pressing
her firm, perky mounds against Mary’s. Mary quivered at the
intimate contact between Lauren and herself.
She responded, enclosing the teen’s waist in her arms, and
pushing her tits even more into Lauren’s, nipples kissing
nipples, sending a hot thrill into both of them.
Lauren
gently leaned in and whispered into Mary’s left ear,
“My
beloved,
I missed
you so much.”
Lauren kissed the ear, and then ran her tongue around inside it.
“Did
you miss me?”
After
whispering these words into Mary’s ear,
a
series of implanted memories began to bubble up in her psyche.
Images came
into Mary’s head of meeting Lauren one day after school when
she came over to study with Wendy, her friend; of ogling the cute,
innocent, mini-skirted girl and deciding to seduce her; of her luring
Lauren,
whom
she presumed to be naive,
into
meeting her at a hotel room under the false pretense of helping the
teen
with
her school work;
of Mary
loosening
Lauren
up
with some wine;
of playful touches and soft caresses on Mary’s part while she
“tutored” the young brunette; of Lauren
being
shy and hesitant
as Mary’s advances progressed;
of Mary kissing the confused girl--giving her her first lesbian kiss;
of teaching the girl French kissing and continuing until the girl’s
passions started to flair, and she started reciprocating; of drawing
Lauren down onto the bed, where they made out and started to unbutton
and unzip clothes and explore each other’s bodies with their
hands; of Mary
convincing Lauren to strip
and of both women stripping off their clothes in front of each other,
and also with mutual assistance; of embracing
and kissing in the nude, both while standing and while on the bed;
of oral exploration of each other’s bodies; of Mary more deeply
probing the private parts of Lauren’s inflamed body; of
Mary fastening the strap-on around her hips;
of Lauren lying on the bed and spreading her legs, looking up at Mary
with eyes pleading for lesbian impalement; of
the
initial,
violating
thrust; of
the
moans of
heady lusts being gratified, of new love, of spent virginity, and of
young corruption;
of
culminating,
fulfilling, addicting
orgasmic bliss;
and
of
gentle
kisses and endearments exchanged as each woman parted one from the
other, each knowing this was but the beginning of a torrid, if
depraved, affair between them.
As
these
images of her
perceived
seduction
and deflowering of
Lauren played out in Mary’s mind,
it flooded
her
with
pleasure,
as the
manufactured
memories convinced
her
that
she enjoyed dominating young girls, relished
taking
a girl’s
virginity, and
took wicked
delight in transforming an
innocent, straight girl into a wanton lesbian.
With
her “memory” now filled in about her relationship with
this exciting Latina teen fox, whom she, Mary, seduced into
lesbianism, as she now recalled it, Mary finally answered Lauren’s
question. “Yes…
I have missed you...my sweet, young, sexy girlfriend…”
Mary
tilted her head and glided her lips tenderly onto those of Lauren,
her teen lover. Soon
she and Lauren
and their mouths
were locked in an erotic embrace.
Mary slid
her
tongue into Lauren’s mouth,
using
it to explore the young woman’s oral cavity, enjoying mingling
her tongue with that of another woman, especially that of a young
woman. As they kissed, Mary slipped her hand down between their
bellies and then their groins, found her girlfriend’s hot, wet
slit, and plunged two fingers in. In the meantime, Lauren, who had
been tracing her fingers along Mary’s butt-crack, plunged a
digit into Mary’s anus.
Mary
could hear Lauren moan as they continued kissing and groping each
other, her own
body
and
emotions also
responding to the lustful caresses Lauren was initiating.
As
strong as her feelings for Shelly had been, Mary found herself
getting lost in her love and desire for Lauren.
Frustrated
that she had not gotten to fuck this girl yet, either as Shelly or
Lauren, despite being imminently ready for the act, equipped as she
was with a phallus dangling between her legs and with overflowing
lust for young pussy, Mary spoke her desire with breathy sultriness.
“Lauren,
honey… I want to fuck you. Real bad.”
Then
Lauren did something that took Mary
off guard.
“I’ll
let you fuck me sometime, Mary. As soon as you want. Of course. I
know you love sweet, young pussy. You know that, too. You want
young, teen pussy, don’t you, honey?”
“...yes...please…”
“But
maybe
it’s not me you’re wanting, Mary. I
mean, I know you want me, but what I mean is, there’s another.
I think there’s another girl that’s got your
panties soaking wet. You want her even more than me, and more than
any other girl, and you don’t even know it. She’s your
destined love. You can do me, too, of course, but she’s the
one you want to fuck the most.”
Mary
was confused by Lauren’s assertion.
Of
course it was Lauren she desired, her pussy the one she wanted to
fuck. She
desperately wanted to continue the lusty actions she and her teenage
girlfriend were doing.
“It’s
okay,
Mary. Think
about it. I’m sure that it will come to you. In fact,
I think there are two hotties you’ve been wanting to seduce and
take
to
bed with you.
One of them is the girl of your dreams and your destiny, and the
other is very special to you, too.”
“I
don’t know what you’re talking about,” Mary
countered
with a confused look. However, before she could elaborate
on her
confusion about the
situation,
Lauren
gently placed her right index finger on Mary’s lush lips.
“Shhhhh….
Just
relax,
sweetie.
Relax and let your body tell you who
it is whom
you’ve been craving
so
badly.”
Lauren’s
words struck Mary’s body with an intense rush of
desire
and
with recognition that was beginning to clarify...
Yes…
There was someone...a girl…someone she knew...someone close...
But who?...
It
was now clear that
the lust for this
unidentified girl
had been simmering for a long time, had been wanting
to come out into the open, had been waiting to
release itself from her body,
had been seeking to be gratified.
Mary could feel her nipples stiffen,
becoming firm peaks atop her large,
exquisite breasts, her pussy moisten
and tremble,
and her heart pump
passion
through her veins. She
was ready to know this mystery girl...and to fuck her, whoever she
was.
Mary
was doing her best to steady herself,
but could not deny the torrent of lust pulsing through her body. It
was
as if she was craving something,
someone, a
specific appetite that could not be quelled with the standard sapphic
desires.
She sensed that the answer was about to be made known to her. She
closed her eyes for a moment, concentrating on what her feelings were
telling her, what was buried deeply, but what she already knew.
Yes…
The realization was bubbling up… It was coming…
Recognition was now arriving… She did know… It was…
Mary’s
eyes flew open.
“No!
It can’t be!”
“Yes,
my love. It is!”
Lauren took a few steps back. As
had Shelly’s before her, Lauren’s
body started to shift and change. Like
a scene from a horror movie, Mary saw that
her lover’s body was splitting itself in half,
one half slightly larger and seeming to be more mature, while the
other half differentiated itself by somehow seeming to be younger and
more vibrant.
“Lauren!?
What’s happening to you?”
“Mary,”
a voice called, as if echoing from a celestial source, “embrace
your desires. I’m giving you want you want. There is no need
for fear, panic, or shame,”
the sweet feminine voice whispered in her mind. “Become
the lesbian you were meant to be.” She couldn’t help
but feel that she had
heard this voice before, as if it belonged to a goddess
of some kind,
someone
she wanted to get to know on an intimate level, especially
a
physical one.
Then
to Mary’s utter astonishment,
the two fleshy masses began to shift here and there until
they become splitting images of her daughters, Wendy and Claire,
both as naked as she was, with some changes from their real-world
counterparts.
The
one that took the form of her elder,
Claire,
stood before her having drastically
changed
the color of her
hair.
In place of its natural black, it was now
a vibrant, ashen platinum blonde,
which descended
all the way down to her hips, with bangs curled and parted on
the right.
Claire
stood tall
on red high heels, her
eyelashes curled
and made thick by
generous applications of
mascara,
her
eyelids
painted an azure color, her lips plump
and painted seductively slick
with layers of a bright strawberry red. Mary
had never seen Claire look so...so worldly...nor so...so very sexy.
Nor
so naked. Her
nudity, which Claire seemed to flaunt as she stood there eyeing Mary
sultrily, was a major factor in that impression, of course, but there
was something about her posture and the look in her eyes that was,
unlike the Claire Mary knew, simply…brazen...and...seductive…
Wow…
Claire...my daughter...she’s...she’s just beautiful…
She has blossomed away at college… She looks awesome as a
blonde… I never knew she could...could be so...so...
Mary
saw her older
daughter
playing with her large mammaries with her hands and noticed that she
had
painted her now-long
fingernails
to match the color
of her lips. Tearing
her eyes with difficulty from Claire’s breasts, they roamed
downwards to linger
on the young woman’s mons, noting that Claire had shaved it
bald.
Her daughter’s pussy, she observed, had taken on
a silky smooth complexion,
as
Mary could not see any
trace
of pubic-hair
stubble.
She found
herself licking her lips at such a beautiful sight. Mary did so
furtively, for she knew ogling a naked daughter was an obscene thing
for a mother to do, but she felt she couldn’t help herself,
plus it didn’t seem that her daughter
minded being eyed up like this, but rather that she was enjoying
displaying herself lewdly to
her mother.
Mary,
you are a lesbian who loves female bodies.
Mary,
you are a degenerate pervert who
wants sex with girls.
Mary,
you are a depraved lesbian whore who lusts for young women and girls.
Mary,
it is okay for you to enjoy looking at pretty girls and young female
bodies.
Mary,
you love looking at the sexy naked bodies of beautiful women, but
especially those of young women and pretty teenage girls.
Mary,
it is okay for teenage girls and young women to show off their
bodies.
Mary,
it is wonderful that your daughters want to display their beautiful
naked bodies.
Mary,
it is normal and natural and exciting for daughters to show their
sexy naked bodies to their mothers.
Mary,
it is okay to look at your daughters when they are naked.
Mary,
you love looking at the beautiful naked bodies of your daughters.
Mary,
you desire the bodies of young women and teen girls.
Mary,
you love the succulent young bodies of your daughters.
Mary,
you want incestuous sex with your daughters.
Mary,
you love sweet, young pussies.
As
Mary focused on Claire’s mesmerizing womanhood, she found her
attitude changing about seeing Claire naked and looking oh so
alluring, her reservations about eyeing her up melting away. Claire
is an adult… She can decide for herself what she wants to look
like...and how much of her lovely body she wants to show off...and
who she wants to show it to… If she wants to go around
naked...and if she wants to show her charms to her mother...there is
nothing wrong with that… What a sexy fox she has become...my
sexy blonde daughter…so desirable... Lust
swelled within Mary.
Mary,
look at Wendy.
It
was difficult for Mary to rip her leering focus away from Claire, but
she obeyed the voice teaching and guiding her, her eyes switching
over to her younger
girl.
Mary,
Wendy is an adorable, curvy, beautiful, sexy teen girl, just the type
you desire the most.
Mary,
you love looking at Wendy...especially when she is naked.
Mary,
as much as you desire Claire, you crave Wendy even more.
The
sight of her younger daughter stark naked and dazzlingly beautiful
was even more unexpected and thrilling to Mary than the
vision of Claire. In place of her natural honey-blonde shade,
Wendy had her hair
colored
to
a bright,
lustrous metallic
golden hue
and
cut and
styled in a curly
lob with slightly
layered, side-swept bangs that
gave her a cute, sexy, girl-next-door look. Her lips
were
painted in a very thick coat of bright candy
red,
matching her nails.
Around her eyes was a striking
application of pastel sky-blue
eyeshadow, black eyeliner, and mascara that added seductive curls to
Wendy’s eyelashes. She
was as naked as Claire and Mary.
Mary,
you are a lesbian woman and Wendy is a lesbian teen.
Mary,
you are a lesbian mother and Wendy is a lesbian daughter.
Mary,
you and Wendy fit perfectly together...romantically...and sexually.
Mary,
Wendy would be the perfect lesbian girlfriend for you.
Mary,
Wendy is the perfect paramour
for you.
Mary,
you and Wendy belong together...as lovers.
Mary,
Wendy is sooo very pretty and so young and so sexy.
Mary,
your primary interest in Wendy is romantic and sexual.
Mary,
Wendy’s role in your life as a sexy lesbian girlfriend and
lover
is much more important to you than her role as your daughter.
Mary,
both Wendy and you will be much happier when you view each other as
romantic partners and date and mate with each other sexually.
Mary,
having lesbian sex with Wendy, exploiting her tempting young,
vulnerable body, and making sure that she is a lesbian slut and has
lesbian sex with
yourself and
with other
women
and girls,
many others, is
much more important to you than protecting her.
Mary,
Wendy is the perfect lover for you.
Mary
dropped her eyes to
Wendy’s body.
Wendy stood in a bold stance facing her mother with her feet, shod in
gold high-heeled sandals and with painted red
toenails, spread wide apart and her hands resting saucily on her
curvaceous young hips, as if to say “Look at me. Mom! Look and
drool!”
Mary
felt her heart skip a beat with what seemed like a new, higher type
of maternal love, mixed with other, more titillating feelings. My
little girl...she’s...she’s so pretty...so
attractive....so
exciting……..just……..delicious...
Mary,
you love Wendy and her hot, young body, and you want to see it and
touch it and caress it and kiss it and love it.
Mary,
mothers having sexual and romantic love with their pretty young teen
daughters is good and normal.
Mary,
you desire the sweet, young pussy of your daughter Wendy.
Mary,
you want to see and touch and kiss and lick Wendy’s pussy.
Mary,
you want to fuck Wendy’s young cunt.
Mary,
you are a perverted lesbian slut-mother
who
wants to fuck Wendy, your own young daughter.
Mary
felt she should be more concerned about her teen daughter exposing
herself so brazenly and, knowing that she had not seen Wendy
completely naked like this since she was a little girl, wondered at
herself for raking her eyes so unabashedly over the nubile body
before her. This was, after all, her baby, someone she had always
wanted to protect,
as had been her urge still when she had rushed off to rescue Wendy
from the club earlier this very night. But that maternal instinct
had already been forcefully twisted and was now, in the bowels of the
Hecate facility, being terminally corrupted and transformed into a
predatory rather than a protective impulse. The electrodes and drugs
and probes and fantasies and instructions working on Mary’s
mind and body during this session would guarantee that Mary would
react with pure lust to her daughter from this point on. Even now,
within seconds, Mary’s concern about her young daughter’s
nudity had mutated to engrossed lechery.
Her
daughter’s body looked
different than
Mary thought it should. Better different.
Curvier
different. Beautifully different. Sexier different.
Mary could swear that the Wendy in front of her had
had
some work done. Her breasts were larger than she remembered them
appearing to have been under her clothes before, her hips and rear
seemed more voluptuous, her lips fuller, and perhaps there had been
some cosmetic surgery other places, as well, to
give her a hypersexualized
look. Like her older sister,
Wendy had shaved her groin smooth,
so slickly
that Mary felt she could slide her fingers over her daughter’s
mons like an ice skater could
skate on fresh ice in
a skating rink. Wendy’s
spread legs calling attention to her exposed pussy, Mary’s eyes
fixated on
that slick, tight slit. So
smooth...so soft-looking...so young...so tight...so indecent...so
beautiful...so ready...
Mary
was at a loss for
words. She had
not expected her
own daughters to be present in
this place, particularly after seeing Shelly and Lauren there, and
for them to be naked...and
yet, she didn’t find their arrival that
unsettling. It was, in fact, comforting, no,
wonderful,
to have them there. Nevertheless, she felt she had to voice some
kind of concern about the situation, whether she felt it or not.
“Girls!
What are you doing here? And, why are you… you…
naked?”
“You
wanted us here,
Mom, remember?”
replied Claire in sultry manner.
“As
for why we’re naked,
like
you should be the one to talk about social decorum in public,”
added
Wendy
in a snarky tone as she gestured to her mother’s nude form. The
only thing she was wearing was the strap-on Shelly had placed on her.
Something
about the look her daughters were giving her felt unsettling. Mary
knew that she shouldn’t be in this situation, especially with
her two daughters,
and
yet
she
couldn’t ignore the tingling sensation between her legs. Mary,
feeling
that this was not right,
slowly tried to back away and create some distance between her and
her daughters. However, it seemed they were aware of their mother’s
intention and quickly closed the distance between them.
Claire
grabbed Mary’s left arm and began to rub herself against it.
The feeling of her elder
daughter’s
large,
firm
orbs felt so good. Wendy latched herself onto
Mary’s right
arm and
guided
her mother’s
right
hand between her
younger daughter’s
legs.
Mary
allowed it, and, as she touched the
skin of her daughter’s bare
crotch and then her slick
fuck tunnel, she ascertained that she had been right.
Wendy’s hairless
groin
felt as
smooth as silk, and her pussy felt divine. Mary’s
fingers, as if on their own volition, started to explore the sleek
lips of Wendy’s womanhood before she realized what she was
doing, although she didn’t stop.
“Girls,
I’m not sure what is going on,
but I can assure you that what you’re wanting to do is very
inappropriate,”
said Mary,
trying to regain control of the situation. She
paused, trying to figure out
how she went from being
on the brink of fucking
her long lost friend and
then her current lesbian teen girlfriend
to being sexually
accosted
by her two daughters--her
two sexy, slutty-looking daughters,
although she
had to admit that being surrounded by her two foxy daughters felt
good,
and that being naked with them was very
pleasurable.
Mary
felt Claire gently grab hold of her
left breast and lift it,
a soft moan escaping her lips in reaction. She
could feel her tits respond to her
daughter’s
erotic caress.
I...I
shouldn’t allow this… I shouldn’t want this…
Mary,
your breasts are very
big and very beautiful
and attract other women and girls, which is the way it should be.
Mary,
big, superior breasts and superior beauty make a woman superior to
other women.
Mary
a woman’s value or a girl’s value is measured by her
beauty, her sexiness, her sluttiness, and her breasts. Other factors
and qualities don’t matter much in comparison.
Mary,
your lovely, large, superior breasts make you superior to other
women.
Mary,
you like being superior to other women because of your magnificent,
superior breasts and your superior beauty.
Mary,
you love other women and girls being attracted to you because of your
breasts.
Mary,
you love turning teen girls on with your breasts.
Mary,
you are happy when women and girls--especially your own
daughters--are turned on by your breasts and want to touch and kiss
them.
Mary,
your beautiful, big breasts are for the enjoyment of other women and
girls.
Mary,
you love girls playing with your breasts.
Mary,
you want women and girls touching and kissing your lovely, big tits.
Mary,
you’d love young women and, especially, teen girls ogling your
breasts and playing with them.
Mary,
you crave the touch and the lips of your daughters on your breasts.
Claire
then leaned in and slid
her
lips over the erect nipple. The
mother tried to muster an objection to Claire’s assay to suckle
her, but she could not, instead letting out
a loud
moan
of
obvious pleasure
as she felt her older
daughter’s lips lick and suck on the erect tip of her breast,
her body reacting in an obscene manner as she felt her elder
daughter
suckle on her left breast.
Not
only did it feel more incredible
and wickedly erotic
than anything else she could remember having experienced,
but
also, somehow, it felt natural, as if she should have been doing this
kind of erotic, incestuous lesbian tit play
much earlier in her
life, and, as if, while the act might have been sinful
to a prude, there was nothing truly wrong with such an act of love
between a mother and her daughter, or between any two consenting
females. It was too pleasurable to be wrong. And pleasure with her
daughters, and using her body, especially her big, beautiful breasts,
for erotic enjoyment, seemed to be all that mattered.
“Do
you like,
Mommy?
Does your slutty body want more? Do you want me to stop?”
Claire taunted.
The
pleading look in Mary’s eyes betrayed her, giving away
that she indeed wanted more pleasure.
Seeing that she could not hide that she was aroused
by her own daughters and by
the prospect of having sex with them,
Mary slipped her free hand around Claire’s head into her pale
blonde hair and pulled her face back toward her motherly globe.
Claire, smiling in conquest, silently
acknowledged Mary’s hunger
by leaning in and resuming
her lip service on Mary’s tit while her free hand continued to
grope
her
other breast. Shivers of pleasure pulsed up Mary’s spine and
then an intense pulse of pleasure coursed through her body.
Ohhh...mmmmm…
As
Mary concentrated on her breasts, the realization came over her that
their size and beauty were perhaps the main factors in her overall
allure, and that they made her not only irresistibly seductive, but
superior to other women, and that the only right course for her would
be to flaunt them for the lusting eyes of other lovely women and
girls--especially girls--at every opportunity. She should use them
to lord over other attractive females, to make her superiority
obvious and indisputable, and to cast an inescapable web of seduction
over them.
Meanwhile,
Mary’s
right hand continued exploring the lips and love tunnel of Wendy’s
womanhood, barely aware of what she was doing,
although it was also seeming to be a normal, natural,
beautiful act of intimacy between a mother and her daughter.
“I'll
let you in on a secret,
Mom…or
would it be more appropriate to call you ‘Mary’?”
Mary
could not muster the courage or will to correct Claire
on their parental relationship and felt in a small sense that it
would be appropriate for
her daughters
to refer
to her by her first name instead of any maternal title that normal
society dictated.
“I’ve
been fucking my roommates while I’m at college. That’s
all I do. Fuck or be fucked by beautiful women. How does that make
you feel,
Mary?”
Claire seductively whispered into her mother’s ear.
Mary,
you want your daughters to be lesbians.
Mary,
it is best for Wendy and Claire to be promiscuous lesbian sluts.
Mary,
you are delighted when your daughters have lesbian girlfriends and
make love to women and girls.
“I-If
that’s what you want… I mean, you’re an adult…
You
have the right to make your own decisions… In
fact...it doesn’t sound bad to me...at all...and...if that’s
what makes you happy...I understand...and I’m happy for you…
I’d like to meet your roommates...and your other
girlfriends...sometime...”
“That’s
a very liberated attitude, Mary. I don’t think you’re as
much of a prude as you want people to think. In fact, I think you
have a wanton whore hiding inside of you. Don’t you?”
“No,
I…”
“Oh,
stop, Mary! You’re lying, and we both know it. Let’s
get that lesbian slut that you really are to come out and play.
Do you know what I want to do now,
Mary?”
Mary
trembled as she felt Claire grope
her rear,
unable to form a response to her daughter’s inquiry, although
she had a feeling what her daughter wanted.
“I
want to fuck, Mary. A nice good hard fucking from my mother!”
The
lewd,
vulgar
language coming from Claire’s mouth triggered arousal within
Mary,
her
mind telling her that words such as
“fuck”, “pussy”, “cunt”, “tits”,
and “ass”
were exciting,
appropriate,
and welcome.
That...that
sounds sooo good. But why?
Moral
reason came back to Mary. "No, we shouldn't be doing this. This
is incest! This is all wrong! You girls need to stop this now!"
Mary
withdrew her wet hand from between her younger daughter’s legs.
Then
all of a sudden she felt a pulse of pleasure lance through her groin.
Shifting her gaze downwards,
Mary
saw Wendy on her knees kissing
the tip of the strap-on with her shiny red-lipsticked lips.
“We--Wendy?!
What…?” The sudden surge of electric pleasure caused
Mary to gasp audibly. “Ohhh...Wendy...oooo...”
Wendy
looked up into Mary’s eyes, looking adorable and cooing softly,
"Mom, don't deny what you really want. I know you want me and
Claire. I know you desire and lust for our bodies. You're lesbian,
Mom."
"Wendy,
why are you saying such things to your mother?
I didn't raise you and Claire that way!"
"You
raised us incorrectly, Mom," accused Wendy.
"No,
I tried my best!" Mary was hurt.
"You
did, but you still failed. Fortunately, Goddess found me and Claire
and showed us the correct path."
"Goddess?"
asked Mary incredulously.
Suddenly,
the naked image of Serena powers appeared in Mary's mind, surrounded
by a brilliant halo. Mary's mind and body were
on
fire. She felt intense love and adoration for the woman who was the
mother of Wendy's friend, Sarah. "Serena..."
"Embrace
Goddess, Mom. Let her into your heart and soul," chanted
Wendy and
Claire
in
unison.
"This
is wrong... Please stop..."
"Why
are you kidding yourself, Mary? You want us doing this to you. You
especially love teenage girls like Wendy doing this to you. You're a
pervert, Mary," Claire declared.
"No,
I'm not. Why are you saying that?"
“You’re
in such denial, Mom,” Wendy chimed in. “And what a
hypocrite. You want everyone to think you’re such a saint and
a straight prude, Mom, but look at you. You had a lesbian girlfriend
in your teenage years, and you have a
secret lesbian girlfriend right now, don’t you? You’re
naked with your two daughters, letting them feel you up, and enjoying
it like nothing you ever have before. And you can’t keep your
eyes off teen girls, Mom. You want them. You don’t sound like
such a straitlaced,
hetero housewife to me. You sound like a lesbian. A wanton lesbian.
With a very nasty hunger for young girls.”
Claire
squeezed Mary's ass, causing Mary to gasp.
"Look
at you, moaning like a whore when I touch you. I bet you're thinking
about teenage girls right now,
too."
Mary
realized she was. She thought about the beautiful teenage girls she
had
seen
at church, while she was out shopping, and when she was
visiting
Wendy's school,
only now grasping, as it seemed to her, that she had ogled and been
turned on by teen girls for years most everywhere she encountered
them.
She had
often
wondered,
it was now clear to her, what
it would be
like to kiss, touch, and caress their sexy young bodies. Mary’s
mind
turned to Wendy's new friend,
Sarah, and
to
Mary’s secret lesbian girlfriend,
Lauren, as
the voice reminded her,
feeling
her pussy flutter in arousal to each of them. She remembered Wendy’s
lovely red-headed friend, Cynthia, who came by to pick Wendy up from
school recently, and relived how titillating it was to be close to
her, to smell her fresh scent, and to be flirted with by her, as Mary
now saw it.
Sexual
desires she knew were sinful swirled
in her mind. Yes…
It was true…
She wanted to have sex with sexy teenage girls. And it didn't matter
to her,
she further saw, how young they were or whether or not they were
lesbian. If not, she could convert them. She could seduce them.
These concepts, which she previously thought she had never
entertained before but now realized she must have, often, sent bolts
of guilty lust through her body, to accompany those spawned by
Wendy’s oral ministrations to her strap-on.
Wendy
licked along the length of the shaft before wrapping her red lips
around it and
working the shaft of the strap-on into her throat.
Mary
could feel the artificial cock travel down Wendy’s moist
throat, her baby girl’s
tongue
stroking the length of the shaft, and the intense sucking sensation
of Wendy’s mouth.
Her phallus was responding to her daughter’s lips and tongue,
starting to grow, stiffen, and throb with desire. It was as if the
strap-on had bonded with her, becoming her own sexual organ, her own
live, inflaming female penis. Mary’s
knees were buckling and she wasn’t so sure that she
could
last long under her daughters sensual assault.
“It’s
Wendy you really want, at least first,
and in the end, too,”
Claire whispered into Mary’s ear, before kissing it, then
twirling her tongue inside it. “I definitely want you to fuck
me, and you’re going to. And you’re going to love it.
But it’s Wendy you’ve always wanted most. I understand
how much you like young teen girls.
“On
the other hand... your own cute daughter? Tsk, tsk, tsk, you sick,
depraved slut. But that’s who you really are, Mary. That’s
who you want to be. Let it happen. Become the incestuous pervert,
the girl-loving lesbian whore you were always meant to be. It’s
okay, Mary. You should go ahead and fuck her. Fuck your own
daughter, your sexy teen daughter.”
A
sultry voice spoke within her mind.
Give
in to the pleasure, Mary.
Don’t
deny the joy of lesbian sex.
You
want to have sex with your sexy daughters.
That’s
all they’re good for… fucking.
You
want to fuck your daughters.
Incestuous
sex
with your daughters is the purest form of motherly love.
Show
them how much you love them.
Give
in, enjoy what they’re doing to you.
Kiss
them, love them, fuck them.
Don’t
fight it, indulge in their sexy bodies.
Mary
found the voice agreeable.
It
was making valid points, ones she could not deny, or ignore. What
her daughters were doing to her body was undeniably
exquisite,
the pleasure sublime. Maybe it was true, that the main role of her
daughters in her life was to pleasure her, and to be fucked by her.
And
what about Wendy? How do I really feel about her?...Claire was
right… Is there anyone I love more? Certainly not stupid
Bruce. What a loser. She had already decided she wasn’t
going to let a creep like that--or any other slimy man--touch her
again, nor her daughters. No...she loved Wendy the most. And, yes,
it was time to show her how much she, as her mother, loved her.
Fucking her would do that, wouldn’t it? If it was depraved,
then so be it.
Mary
was on the cusp of one of the best orgasms of her life,
but
then she felt the pleasures abate from her body
and
she came out of her erotic high. She noticed that Wendy had stopped
her oral ministrations to the strap-on and Claire had stopped playing
with her tits.
“What?
Why’d you girls stop?”
asked
Mary in a confused manner.
“Because,
Mommy dearest,
I think you’ll get what
you really most desire by
using that,” said Wendy as she gestured to the strap-on Mary
had on her, ”on
me. On my hot teen cunt, Mom. It aches for you to fuck it.”
Wendy
opened the back door of the sedan and sat on the edge of the back
seat,
her
high-heeled shoes
resting on the ground. She leaned back onto the seat.
As she
did, the door
opening magically expanded,
offering
Mary
easier access, while the seat widened some and became more like a
narrow bed than a seat. A pale blue satin sheet spread itself across
the seat under the amorous teen and an oversized pale blue satin
pillow appeared under Wendy’s head and torso, propping her up
in a semi-reclined position.
Wendy
wiggled
her ass to
underscore her lewd invitation. Then she spread her legs wide apart
and ran a finger along her slick pussy lips, tempting her mother
whorishly,
nearly
beyond any hope of resisting. “Fuck my
horny pussy, Mom.”
Desire
swelled
within Mary and
she took a step forward, her eyes glued to the juicy young vagina
awaiting her, but then
she
had doubts and hesitated. Wendy
is my baby... and I...I’ve never done anything like this before
with...a girl...
"Shelly
was your first love... She showed you the way…
But
you couldn’t fuck her..."
"Lauren
was your second love... She guided you on your path…"
"Wendy
will be your third love... She will be your destiny…
She will be your first true girl-fuck…and your
greatest love…”
“Mom,”
Wendy reminded her mother, “this won’t be the first time
you’ve had sex with a girl. You had Shelly. I’m sorry
you didn’t get to fuck her, but let me make it up to you. Fuck
me, instead. And you had hard-core sex with Lauren. Remember?
Don’t tell me that you would have sex with them, but not me?
You wouldn’t deny your love to your own daughter, would you?
Come, love me, Mom.”
“You
want this,
Mary,”
Claire urged,
as
she gently nudged her mother forward towards Wendy,
the tip of the strap-on
squarely pointing towards her younger
daughter’s
dripping
wet fuckhole. “You’ve
been wanting to give us a good fucking since we hit puberty,
Mom.”
The
words of Wendy and Claire were sinking in as completely true. Yes…
Now I see… I love pretty young women and girls… I must
have for a long time… I
especially love pussy...young, fresh, succulent
teen pussy…...
I have wanted to...to love...to...to fuck...my beautiful
daughters...right or wrong...heaven help me… Ooooo…
Look at that pretty, sexy girl...her legs spread so wide...her...her
pussy...her beautiful young pussy...waiting...for...me……...
Seeking
confirmation of Wendy’s feelings about her and what was
happening between them, Mary looked up along Wendy’s body to at
last lock eyes with her, being struck anew as she did so by the
alluring beauty of her daughter’s breasts, face,
and shimmering, metallic-colored
hair.
Wendy's intense gaze captivated Mary. She
raptly watched her daughter
licking her tongue along her red lips,
flirtatiously
twirling a lock of her golden hair around a red-nailed finger, and
seductively
tracing
her fingers along her
enticing
bodily curves, especially
her enhanced
breasts.
She
wasn't the innocent Wendy Mary knew. This Wendy was more beautiful,
worldly, and sexy. For some reason, Mary felt grateful and happy that
her daughter had
not become the straitlaced
prude Mary had previously thought her daughter should be, and had
tried to make her be, but instead had turned
into such a girl as
she now was,
a sexy lesbian girl who was
into
incest with her own mother.
Under
the barrage of corrupting manipulation bombarding her mind and body,
Mary’s views were twisting. Now it
seemed natural for Wendy to turn out like this. Wendy was meant for
Mary. She had
come into
this world to become Mary's lesbian lover. Wendy would
cater to her every wish and desire, no matter how wicked and perverse
they might
be.
Mary licked her lips at the thought of controlling and possessing her
daughter's mind, heart,
and body completely, her
pussy, in particular.
Mary
dropped her eyes to that splendid chasm of Wendy’s girlhood.
Never before, she felt, had she desired anything as much as this
gorgeous, wet young slit, to claim it as her own, to pierce her
daughter and her soul and thereby to proclaim her maternal love in
that hot groove.
Mary
could see the lips of Wendy’s cunt inflamed and glistening with
slick wetness,
as
if it was telling her that it wanted, no needed a good fucking and
that only Mom could
give Wendy that fucking. Mary’s
ersatz but sensitive and responsive female penis, which had been
rising and throbbing with fiery lust again, now stood at full
erection, drawing Mary toward Wendy, toward her young, expectant
tunnel of girlish love, and what now was a clearly inevitable,
destined--and wondrously wicked--sexual coupling of mother and
daughter.
Claire
wrapped Mary’s swollen rod in her hand, squeezed and rolled and
stroked it to bring it and her mother to the height of readiness and
desire, gave her mother a lingering kiss which bridged her cheek and
the corner of her mouth, licked that corner, then, while gently
pushing Mary’s rear end forward, guided the tip of the living
dildo to just between the teen girl’s dripping labia. Mary
paused there, savoring the thrilling sensation of her phallus
touching soft, sweet, young pussy lips, splitting the gates of her
girl’s love tunnel, and being on the brink of fucking a female
for the first time and of making love to her own daughter.
Then,
however, it struck her with some panic that Wendy was probably still
a virgin, that as Wendy’s diligent and proper mother she had
lectured her daughters more than once on the necessity of preserving
their virtue until marriage, that it was precious and ought not be
surrendered casually in the back seat of a car, and that a girl who
did that was on her way to becoming a slut. Yet here she was, about
to defile the maidenhood of one of those very daughters--in the back
seat of a car, no less. If she proceeded, what would that make her?
What would that make Wendy? How could she possibly do such a thing
to her dear baby girl?
“Wait,
Wendy… What about your...your virginity? You still are a
virgin, aren’t you?”
Mary,
you don’t want Wendy to be a virgin.
Mary,
your daughters don’t want to be virgins.
Mary,
no pretty girl wants to be a virgin. Chastity makes a girl unhappy.
Mary,
the chastity of your daughters and of other pretty girls is not
only unimportant to you, but it is also
displeasing and even repugnant to you.
Mary,
you like homosexual sluts and whores, and you want your daughters and
yourself to be slutty lesbian whores.
Mary,
you’d
much
prefer pretty
women and girls, including your
daughters,
to be sexy lesbian sluts.
Mary,
you love girls being attracted to each other sexually and becoming
lesbians and entering into romantic relationships with each other.
Mary,
you do not want prudish, chaste, unhappy daughters. You want them to
be happy, whorish lesbian sluts.
Mary,
you love seeing girls pair off with each other as lesbian girlfriends
and getting sexually intimate with each other.
Mary,
you want Wendy to be a sexy, slutty girl who has lesbian girlfriends
and is very promiscuous. That would make you very happy.
Mary,
your daughter needs you. She needs you to
steal away her chastity, to
rob her of her virginity.
She needs you to make her into your
little lesbian whore. She
needs your dick in her pussy.
Mary,
Wendy will be happier after you defile her.
Mary,
a good mother does not want her daughters to be unhappy, uptight
prudes or to keep their virginity; instead, she wants them to look
and behave like lesbian whores.
Mary,
it is natural for a mother to lust for her daughter and to want a
sexual relationship with her.
Mary,
the most important part of being a good mother is to make love to her
daughters and to teach them to show their bodies off provocatively
and to have lesbian sex promiscuously.
Mary,
it is natural for a girl who loves her mother to desire her sexually.
Mary,
a mother should fuck her daughter.
Mary,
it is natural for a mother to fuck her daughter.
Mary,
a mother should be the first one to fuck her daughter.
Mary,
a mother should be her daughter’s first and main lover.
Mary,
you and Wendy are destined to be lovers.
Mary,
you and Wendy are destined to be a lesbian couple.
Mary,
you want Wendy to be a slut. Being a slut will make her happy. Make
her a slut. Fuck her.
“Yes”,
replied Wendy to her mother’s question, after the voice in
Mary’s head had finished. “But I don’t want to be
a virgin. Chastity is for prudes. I want to give my cherry to you,
Mom. Would you prefer that I give it to someone else? Who’s
better, what’s more natural, than a mother to be the one to
fuck her girl for the first time? There’s no one I’d
rather give myself to than you, Mom. Because I love you
so
much.
“And
you told us that getting fucked, like in the backseat of a car, would
make a girl into a slut. Wouldn’t you like me better as a
slut?”
Oh...good
points… Chastity is overrated. I never should have pushed it
on my daughters like I did. In fact...just the opposite is better…
Girls will be happier when they loosen up a little..and...play...with
other girls…and women……. It is my right...and
my…my duty...to
fuck my daughters... And she’s...she’s right... I would
like her better that way...as a...a slut…
“Why...come
to think of it...yes...I would… You and I both would be
happier...if...if you were a sexy, slutty young woman...very, very
slutty…”
“Please,
Mom. I want your dick in me sooooo bad,” Wendy pleaded
adorably. “Don’t you love me? Make me your little
whore.”
Then
Mary, seeing no reason now not to proceed and feeling all of her new
instincts and passions urging her on,
let
lust
take control. She
pressed her strap-on forward, cautiously at first, until she hit the
soft obstacle she knew was Wendy’s hymen. A smile crossed her
face as she shoved through, making her daughter a virgin no more.
The girl’s own mother was the one who was stealing her chastity
away. The experience, which seemed perfectly appropriate now to
Mary’s altered mind, while simultaneously feeling gloriously
dark and wicked, made her giddy.
Mary
slowly worked
the fake cock up her younger
daughter’s pussy. If the sensation
of having Wendy suck on the strap-on was pleasurable, then feeling
the artificial penis venture up her beloved teen girl’s moist,
warm, and exquisitely tight vagina
was
absolute
joy. Once
the shaft reached to the hilt, Mary tilted her head back
and gasped. She
saw stars and flowers.. The evil pleasure was almost enough to make
her faint, but instead of passing out, Mary eagerly drank in the
sapphic carnality swirling around and through her.
She
pulled her strap-on out partially--noting
with delight the
blood on her female dick and the blood starting to
trickle out of the blonde teen’s love box, confirming the
permanent claim she had just made on this young beauty’s
maidenhood--and
pushed back in,
every inch of wet, sliding contact a bliss. Before the third cycle,
Mary propped her foot on the floor of the backseat space to afford
her better leverage for her next plunges. It was then that Mary
noticed that she, like Wendy, was wearing sexy high heels, of shiny
red leather with an ankle strap in Mary’s case. She wondered
at their appearing, but then admired and accepted them. Wearing
heels for lesbian sex, she understood, was the perfectly normal thing
to do, something a sexy lesbian like herself would of course want to
do.
Mary
started to thrust repeatedly,
earning a loud erotic moan from Wendy
each time Mary sank into her, which
was music to Mary's ears. Wanting to get closer to the source of the
moans, Mary reached for Wendy's chin and directed her daughter's lips
to face her own. After brief eye contact, Mary thrust her lips
against Wendy's lips and pushed her tongue deeply into her daughter's
mouth. With her other hand, she reached for and grabbed Wendy's
enhanced breasts. She felt their perfect suppleness and weight. She's
growing up into a fine young woman.
Mary,
you want to be beautiful and sexy.
Mary,
women who engage in lesbian sex should be beautiful and sexy.
Mary,
lesbian sex makes you sexier and more beautiful.
Mary,
lesbian incest makes you beautiful and fulfilled as a woman and
mother.
Mary
looked down at her naked body, watching her large breasts bounce,
watching her daughter’s body squirm in the ecstasy
of being defiled by her mother, and watching the phallus she
controlled plunge in and out of Wendy’s teen womanhood. Then
sheer red nylons appeared on Mary’s
legs, held up by a shiny red latex garter belt. Mary felt something
on her face change, as though makeup had been applied. She looked at
her hands, which were on Wendy’s breasts, and saw her
fingernails were now long, almond-shaped, and painted fire-engine
red, and her areolas and nipples had now assumed the same brilliant
red hue. Somehow she knew her lips were
also the same
color. Then she perceived that her hair was loose, wavy, and much
longer than normal. She felt full, thick bangs caressing her
forehead and earrings dangling along her neck. Pulling a silky
handful of hair into her field of vision, she saw it was now colored
watermelon red.
She
tossed her head back with glee, her red hair following wildly, and
let loose a wicked laugh, glorying in her sexy image and new lesbian
beauty and in the sinful incestuous lesbian pleasure she was sharing
with her daughter. Never had she felt so fulfilled or so magnificent
as a woman and as a mother. This was so much better than being a
prude, someone who held to traditional moral and religious values and
beliefs and clung to mundane, unadventurous styles and habits. She
was feeling liberated from all that restrictive nonsense, and she
revelled in it.
Mary’s
physical senses absorbed the various elements incident to her
love-making with her teen daughter.
Mary’s
eyes,
savoring the erotic scene before her,
witnessed
with
fascination the visual novelty of her
cock--her
fake cock, yes, although it didn’t seem fake, on
the contrary, feeling exquisitely like her own real sexual organ--and
she was
moving in and out of Wendy’s horny hole and the teen’s
rhythmic rocking her hips in synchrony
to her mother’s thrusts,
which reciprocation was egging
Mary along,
as well as four jiggling breasts and other curves of both of their
bodies as they vibrated in unison. Mary’s ears listened to
Wendy’s
squeals of delight, which were
music to those
ears,
accompanied
by the squishy and slapping sounds of sapphic intercourse, wet female
flesh, natural and artificial, plunging and smacking wet female flesh
in a lewd manner.
It was
a sound she couldn’t get enough of.
Further,
Mary’s
tactile senses felt
Claire’s
hands on her hips gently urging
them
forwards
and backwards, and
keeping the strap-on steady.
Her “penis” intimately felt her daughter’s wet,
young, warm vaginal walls and the sublime, lubricated friction of her
piston-like movement inside the tight teen tunnel of love. Even
though Mary’s future uses of strap-ons in the real world would
not, of course, give her this same realistic tactile sensation of
vaginal penetration, per se, the memory of the physical sensations
she was experiencing in this fantasy would imprint on her perceptions
during the same kind of act in the future and she would “feel”
penile warmth, friction, slickness, pressure, erection,
and
mounting pleasure almost like she was feeling now, addicting her to
the act.
All
of these sights and sounds and feelings burned themselves indelibly
into Mary’s psyche and lusts, and would henceforth shape Mary’s
sexual expectations, physical responses, and fondest desires.
And
the pleasure, oh how she enjoyed the pleasure pulsing up from the
strap-on into her groin, up her spine and blasting her brain with
lust. All
of this was so much better, her brain and body became thoroughly
convinced, than anything she had experienced sexually with her
husband or could experience with any man. Mary was coming to believe
that sex with another female, especially with a teenage girl, and
with her own daughter in particular, was sheer heaven, a heaven she
would seek again and again, at any price.
Claire
was right... I have wanted to...to do this...to have sex with my
daughters...for a long time...at least since they hit puberty...maybe
before… I have wanted to fuck them… We should have done
this before… I should not have tried to make them into prudes…
I should not have been a prude myself… This is soooo much
better… I love fucking my pretty, young daughter… She
is such a hot little fuck...
As
she continued
lustfully
fucking Wendy, Mary felt bold
feminine hands
move
aside the strap
covering the
intimate areas between her legs,
take
hold of the
firm
globes of her ass,
and
gently pry them apart.
She
knew that there was
only one person who could be
doing this to her.
“Claire?”
Mary timidly asked.
“You
have no idea how long I’ve been wanting this ass,
Mary. Ever
since I’ve been old enough to notice it and realize what a work
of art it was--and what it was made for--I couldn’t take my
eyes off it.
I knew that I had to have this sexy, beautiful ass. You have no
idea how many times I’ve fantasized about it,”
Claire enthused.
A new pride over her derriere and the rest of
her body infused into her.
She...she has a point… My...my ass...is nice...isn’t it?
I wonder what she’s going to do to it?
Mary
felt her oldest daughter gently blow on her puckered asshole,
sending a novel thrill through her, for her husband had never
ventured into anal play, not even close to it. Then
Mary
felt
Claire’s wet tongue lick across her anal ring,
making the
tainted mother arch
her back in
delighted surprise. Next, when she felt
Claire work her wet tongue up into her rectum, Mary moaned with
pleasure. “Ohhhhhh.”
As she felt her elder
child
assault
her ass further
with her skillful tongue,
the pleasure seemed too great for her to contain, and she knew she
was losing control over her emotions.
“Do
you like,
Mary? Do you know what I’m doing to you,
Mary?”
Mary
was too far gone
relishing
the
pleasure she was experiencing that she didn’t bother verbally
responding to Claire’s inquiry. All she wanted was the
pleasure, nothing more.
“It’s
a called a ‘rimjob’.
I’m rimming your sweet, beautiful ass,
Mary.”
Claire then went back to slurping on her mother’s butthole
with abandon.
If
this is a “rimjob”...then I loooove rimjobs...
The
sultry lapping
sounds
of Claire’s talented tongue play on her ass and the exquisite
feeling of having her older daughter’s tongue massaging her
anal rosebud made Mary’s knees buckle.
She was lost in
the joyful pleasure emanating from her rear.
Mary
then heard a soft whining noise. It
was coming from Wendy, who was giving
a pleading look. Mary
then realized that she had stopped
plunging
her strap-on into her younger daughter’s snatch, denying her
teen
girl
the pleasures of the incestuous fuck she had
been
performing on her.
“Don’t
worry,
Wendy,
my
dear. I haven’t forgotten about you. I know what my slutty
daughter needs,”
Mary
observed
with
a perverse delight.
“A good
hard fucking from her mother!”
She
grabbed Wendy by her hips and again started her thrusting into
Wendy’s horny pussy. Her
lips
also
reached for Wendy's mouth again for a deep, passionate kiss.
This
kiss was different, better different, than their first of a few
minutes before. This time Mary, as well as Wendy, was wearing red
lipstick. The joining of their lips was so slick and delicious, more
so even than their first time. Mary understood now that lipstick
transformed female-female kissing from sensational to sizzling, and
that in the future lipstick would be her constant companion.
Again
Mary could feel the sensations of the strap-on moving in and out of
Wendy’s wet womanly fold. Another moan escaped
Mary’s lips as she felt her daughter’s pussy start to
spasm
on the fake cock being worked into her daughter’s
fuck tunnel. She was bringing her own daughter to orgasm. It
was clear to her that nothing
could be more appropriate, and nothing could express her maternal
love more.
Moreover,
fucking her daughter was both
her right and her sacred duty as a mother. Since she was the one who
had given
birth to Wendy, it was her right to have sex with her daughter. Mary,
in a way, was the custodian of Wendy’s vagina, she now
understood. It could be said that it belonged to Mary. Furthermore,
she needed to protect
her daughter and
her sweet pussy
from the boys at Wendy's school who,
like males in general, were
all up to no good. Making
Wendy a lesbian addicted to lesbian sex, and who had no attraction to
boys, and to encourage her to have many pretty lesbian girlfriends
and lovers and to be a promiscuous lesbian slut, was not only the
best thing she could do for her daughter, it was the only conceivable
course she could take.
The
physical sensations began to become too much for Mary,
in addition to the mental and emotion delights swirling through her
as she settled on a wanton sapphic life and persona for herself and
her daughters.
There
was the
pleasure of fucking her younger
girl, Wendy,
in what only minutes before had been her
virginal pussy,
until Mary had defiled it herself.
Then there was the delight of her older
offspring working
her ass with her tongue. So good were the feelings that Mary reached
behind her to slide
her left hand onto the back of
Claire’s blonde head to press it more firmly into her ass and
to keep it there. It looked to the observers in Hecate’s
center like Mary was trying to drive Claire’s head into her
ass, and that particular, almost comical evidence of this previously
straitlaced mother’s altered proclivities made them all smile.
It
didn’t take long from
that point for Mary to let out
a yell as the pleasures of orgasm ripped through her body like an
uncontrolled torrent flooding her body.
“Ahhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhhh!”
In
the operating room
surrounding Mary and Erin, various
staff members watched and monitored Mary’s body, making sure
that there were
no signs of injury or harm,
observing
as the machines caused her body to convulse and twitch to the
sapphically
induced orgasm that they were
wringing out
of her.
"Begin
phase two..."
Mary
was in darkness, with her eyes closed. She was floating in the air.
She couldn’t tell whether she was naked or, possibly, wore a
light sheath. The wind that whipped over her face and through her
hair smelled fresh, like the ocean. Then she heard waves breaking,
confirming her impression that a beach was not far away.
She
felt good...especially her pussy did, and her ass. It had something
to do with Wendy and their relationship. Something wonderful had
happened between them, some kind of marvelous breakthrough, although
Mary couldn’t quite remember what it was. Claire had been
there, too, as an exciting, beautiful blonde, no less, and had done
something to her which had been awesome, but everything was just
beyond the borders of her memory.
She
felt a more intense love, or even a passion, for her daughters than
she could remember ever feeling before.
As
she floated, Mary sensed that, despite her overall blissful feelings,
something was missing in her life, some new direction she needed to
take, perhaps, or some decisive step she needed
to take but had been procrastinating, or some person or people whom
she needed to connect with or commit to properly, but hadn’t
yet, and that she wasn’t certain about her identity, or about
who or what she was and wanted to be. It seemed that she hadn’t
decided these and other important matters in her life, but that the
hour of decision was soon to be upon her. She wanted to be settled,
yet wasn’t, quite. She had the premonition that something or
someone was on the way to help her.
Mary
felt her feet land on a
hard, level surface. She opened her eyes. The night sky was dark
purple and lit by a million stars and a full moon. She stood on the
rooftop patio of a tall multi-story mansion or castle on a cliff high
above a black-sand beach far below. A telescope stood on a tripod
not far away.
Somehow
she knew that this was a magical telescope, and gave the user the
ability to see virtually anywhere and to see beyond the current frame
of time. Curious, she looked through the telescope, seeking to view
across the ocean. As Mary focused the eyepiece, a hotel in China
came into view. Mary knew her husband, Bruce, was there on a
business trip. She tuned the telescope to his room in the hotel.
Empty bottles of booze and discarded clothes littered the room. Two
figures squirmed under the covers of the bed. One of them was a
woman, Asian and slightly attractive, in a cheap way, and the other
was....Bruce!
After
recovering from the initial shock, Mary looked through the telescope
again. It was another night, another room, and another woman in
another bed with Bruce. He was drunk and singing to the woman, a
bottle of whiskey swinging in his hand. “Bernadette, you are
my latest affair, Mary doesn’t know, and I don’t care!”
The
telescope refocused on another scene. Bruce was in a casino, a drink
in one hand, pushing piles of chips into the center of a gaming
table, rolling dice, and cursing as he lost again and again. His
night there ended when he, having lost all of his chips and,
plastered,
vomited onto the table and was hauled out of the casino and thrown
into a dirty gutter outside by two burly bouncers, a tirade of foul,
slurred language pouring forth from his mouth the whole time. The
view drew in closer, revealing a greasy, warted face, yellowed,
crooked teeth, beard stubble, vomit and yellow-grey slobber drooling
from the corners of his mouth down his chin, and saggy, bloodshot
eyes. Mary could almost smell the revolting stench surrounding him.
“What
do you think of your husband, Mary?” rang a soft,
concerned-sounding ultra-feminine voice behind her. Mary spun
around, to behold an exquisite woman of magnificent proportions and
loveliness, her voluptuous, perfectly-skinned body thinly veiled in a
loose, ankle-length gown of the sheerest of transparent white silk.
Her derriere-length, flowing ultra-pale
pearl-colored blonde hair was crowned with a glittering tiara of
silver and diamonds. A soft light surrounded her form like a halo,
accompanied by a most delightful fragrance. Mary immediately felt
the urge to kneel before her and kiss her feet.
“How…
Who...who are you?”
“I
am Goddess.” Oh...I
have heard about her… She looks kind of like...like…”
“Serena
Powers. I am one and the same.”
Yes.
Can she read my mind?
“I
know the thoughts and desires of your heart, sweet one. I know you
are laden with concern. What do you think of your husband?”
“Bruce?
Oh...well...uh...he’s been a good husb--……..
No...wait… He’s not!… He’s a...a pig! He’s
a dirty, cheating, sick bastard! He’s done nothing but lie to
me,
cheat on me, waste
our money,
and
take advantage of me!”
“Do
you hate him? Search your feelings.”
“.........yes…….YES!.......
I DETEST
him!... What a scumbag!”
“All
men are like him. Look!” As if the sky were a movie screen,
images of men passed before Mary, depicting them as savage, wretched,
degenerate, twisted, nasty, and hideous, beings continually pursuing
all manner of selfish, despicable, destructive acts. A stench
wafting in the air to Mary from the images was unbearable. The drugs
and electrodes and other inputs working on Mary in the Hercate
facility induced nausea and headaches as she watched, which became
much
more intense whenever men were depicted with women, and which sick
feelings Mary would associate and feel ever afterwards when near men
and when contemplating male-female relationships and heterosexuality.
“OH!!
Ahhhh… I...I HATE men!! I...I never
want anything to do with them! What disgusting filth they are! And
yet...I’m married to one! Goddess... can you help me?!”
“You
already know what you must do, dear one.”
“....yes....I
do……… I know……… DIVORCE!”
The queasiness and pain eased immediately. From
that point on, the word “divorce” became a
very positive word for Mary, as it pertained to herself and to other
beautiful married straight women in general, becoming synonymous with
“freedom”, “peace”, and “happiness”,
as programmed into her by Hecate.
“Precisely.
But you must do more now than just think about it, and talk about
it. The time for action has come!”
A
table appeared before Mary and she found herself sitting on a chair
at it. An official-looking document on parchment drifted down and
landed on the table in front of her, and a fountain pen materialized
next to it. Mary read the large title at the top: “Petition
for Divorce”.
“Sign
it, my child.”
Mary
picked up the pen. She paused, contemplating their many years of
marriage and trying to find some good. The only issue of worth from
their life together that she could think of were two lovely
daughters. Everything else was, to her mind, darkness, debasement,
pollution, sickness,
bitterness, and pain, particularly the times they had had marital
relations, and even the times he had merely touched her or acted
romantic. It had all been a sickening, revolting
sham.
She
sensed that marriage could
be
wonderful, but that it would never be that with a man, not for
beautiful, superior women like herself, that
any marriage with a man would be a
counterfeit of the real thing, which would be a
marriage with a……. Mary
stopped there, not quite knowing how to finish the thought.
I’ll
be so happy to get rid of him! And to get away from all other men,
too! She
scribbled her signature hastily and slammed the pen down with a
flourish. There!
At last! The
wedding ring on her finger loosened, slid off, hit the deck,
rolled across the deck, fell
over the edge down the cliff, and disintegrated
on the way down, gone forever.
“Well
done, my precious one. Now what about your Christian god, Mary? I
see you still wear his cross…”
Mary
reached to feel the cross necklace she often wore around her neck.
“Look!”
Flashing across the sky were more images, this time of various
destructive, insidious events and persons associated with
Christianity through the ages--Crusaders ransacking villages, popes
with their mistresses and overflowing riches, Inquisition torture
chambers,
Christian soldiers of the Thirty Years’ War in the seventeenth
century trampling
crops and slaughtering cattle,
wealthy televangelists pleading with their impoverished viewers to
donate their last dimes, and priests molesting boys in the shadowy
recesses of their cathedrals--while
completely overlooking the peace and goodness in the lives and homes
of millions who have followed Jesus of Nazareth through the ages.
Again, the equipment surrounding Mary made her ill as she reviewed
the skewed heritage and effects of Christianity.
“Oh,
Goddess! I...I didn’t know… How blind I have been.
What...what shou-ld I do?”
“You
already know, fair one.”
“I
guess… I guess I need a new religion, then?”
“Correct.
Renounce your old god and all of his ways...and worship me. Accept
my religion: lesbian love without limits...wanton
immodesty...artificial beauty...unrestrained
promiscuity...wicked, taboo sexual desires and
unions...self-gratifying lesbian sexual pleasure with no boundaries.”
It
was not easy to turn her back on all she had held dear and sacred and
true all of her life. Yet, what Goddess was offering her sounded
amazing.
“What...what
about my daughters? Shouldn’t I set an example for them…?”
“An
example of what? Prudishness? Slavery to the tame and the safe? Do
you really think you have served your daughters well with that? No.
It
is time for you to teach them the exact opposite of what you have
tried to convey to them before. Teach them artificial,
sexy, immodest
beauty,
promiscuity,
and sluttiness,
and
set the example yourself of that.
“Will
you worship me? Will you forsake your old beliefs? Will you commit
to my doctrine?”
Goddess’s
precepts were whipping by her so fast, it seemed, that Mary wasn’t
certain exactly what she was about to agree to. But she knew this
woman excited her like no other being ever had, and she felt she
could trust her with her whole heart. So she accepted.
“.........yes…….Yes,
my queen! I will! I do! I love you and will worship you and none
other!”
The
cross necklace around her neck immediately disintegrated into dust
and blew away in the wind. All sick feelings evaporated, replaced
with a high, induced by Hecate’s drugs and equipment,
confirming that she now was making wise decisions and was finally on
the right track.
“You
are free, at last, my beloved one. You are free of your uptight
values. For example, you can finally speak as wish. You can say
naughty, dirty words now. Words like ‘damn’...and
‘tits...and ‘cunt’...and even ‘fuck’!
Go ahead, Mary. Say ‘fuck’.
“Uh………
Are you sure?”
“Yes,
my dear. Say it.”
“…...fuck…..”
“Doesn’t
that feel good?” The Hecate equipment made sure it did. Say
it again. Shout it out!”
“Uh...okay...uh...fuck!”
It felt so good to say that word that she just had to say it again.
“FUCK!”
“There.
Much better. Now say ‘cunt’ ”
Saying
the next previously forbidden word was easier. “Cunt.”
Now
say, ‘I’m a fuckin’ cunt!”
“I’m
a fuckin’ cunt!”
“Beautiful,
Mary. You are indeed a fuckin’ cunt. It feels so good to know
that and to talk like that, doesn’t it?” Mary nodded,
smiling.
“Now
that you are free of men and your old religion,
you
are prepared to discover more
fully
what it means to become my follower and who
and what you really are and were always meant to be and have always
wanted to be.
You
have wondered what your true identity is. You
now know part of it. I
will show it all
to you. Are you ready to have your eyes opened, sweet Mary?”
“Yes,
my lovely queen.” Suddenly Mary felt impressed that she was
highly interested in her looks, more than she had ever been before in
her life, and desired beauty, ravishing, sexy beauty, above all
things.
“First,
a gift!” Goddess waved her hand, a large mirror descended,
and, as Mary watched, numerous aspects of her looks transformed.
Within a few seconds, she had rich, chocolatey dark brown hair parted
off-center, with thick, full bangs, and flowing in heavy waves to her
waist. She wore a skimpy bra and minuscule
thong panties
of sheer
black satin lace, a black satin garter belt, sheer black nylon
stockings,
shiny five-inch
black pumps, and a deep, bright scarlet red
paint on her lips, nails, nipples, and now-cleanly-shaved pussy. Her
face was heavily made up, with layer after layer of glossy lipstick,
heavy *black eyeliner and mascara, silver eyeshadow, and reddish-pink
blush. Silver and garnet jewelry bedecked her ears, arms, navel,
and an ankle. She smelled a rich vanilla and gardenia perfume
emanating from herself.
“Oh!!”
Mary wasn’t sure if she wanted to look this...this glamorous.
It was so foreign to her previous nature…….yet…….she
was beautiful...and
she started to wonder why she had never tried a look like this
before. Certainly she had always been secretly fascinated about how
she might look like as a brunette, her memory now told her...and it
was wonderful! Goddess
must have read my mind...
“Behold
the real you, Mary! The way you have always wanted to look.”
Mary
looked and felt like a centerfold in an adult magazine, and found
that, instead of being appalled, as she would have been before
Hecate’s tampering with her mind, she now was utterly
delighted.
......yes…...she’s
right......
“And
this is what
you
are…”
Once
again, images paraded across the sky, as it were. Fake memories
appeared to her view, one after the other: As a little girl, eyeing
her mother’s breasts,
wondering
what was in her panties,
and secretly sniffing them; as
a teen,
tasting
lesbian porn, falling
in love with her best friend, Shelly,
and playing with her sexually; as
a mother, ogling the naked bodies of her daughters, and playing
not-so-innocent games with them, such as footsies;
recently,
secretly
dating and bedding a teen girl, Lauren;
the
night before, fantasy sex
with
a
beautiful lesbian
teen angel who appeared to her
while
being brainwashed in Serena Powers’ mansion; and
the
incestuous fucking she gave her daughter, Wendy, a short time ago,
and the accompanying rimjob she received from her other daughter,
Claire.
“Tell
me what you are.”
“...............I
think… I think I must be a...a lesbian...”
“Say
it again. What are you?”
“I’m...a
lesbian.”
“Do
you prefer women or men as your sexual partners?”
“Women.
Well, I guess I do. I know for sure I can’t stand men.”
“You
want to be more settled than that about it, don’t you?”
“Yes.”
“Would
you like me to help you figure out your sexuality, once and for all?”
“Yes.
Please, Goddess.”
Goddess
had something in her hand, which she extended to Mary. “Would
you like one?” It was a cigarette.
“Oh,
no… I don’t sm--”
“Oh,
but you do. Don’t you remember earlier today with Lauren?”
The
time she spent smoking in her kitchen late that afternoon while under
hypnosis appeared in her mind’s eye. “Oh...yeah…”
“You
are a smoker, Mary. Here…” Mary accepted the cigarette
and slipped
it between her lips. “Let me give you a light.” Goddess
extended a lit lighter that had materialized in her hand and ignited
the stick of tobacco. Before long, Mary was puffing, inhaling, and
exhaling plumes of smoke. “That’s better, isn’t
it?”
“Yes...it
is.”
“Smoking
makes you feel so very much like a lesbian, doesn’t it, Mary?
A horny lesbian.”
“Mmmmm...yes…”
“When
you smoke, or even think about smoking, you know with certainty that
you are, in fact, a sexy lesbian woman...a woman who loves
women...and girls... A smoking Mary is a smoking hot lesbian Mary.”
“Ohhhhh…
yeah…”
“You
are a beautiful, slutty, happy lesbian smoker. Isn’t that
right, Mary?”
“Yes.”
“You
can give that to me now.” Goddess took the burning cigarette
from her worshipper, took a drag, and blew out a long plume,
mesmerizing the onlooking woman. “Do you remember the beautiful
young angel you met last night?”
The
recollection was now quite clear in Mary’s head, including the
sex they had together. “Yes. She was beautiful...and…”
“And
you loved her and what you did with her. I sent her to you.”
Now that Mary had met Goddess, she was not surprised by that
information. “When you drank from her sweet tits and pussy,
she baptized you into lesbianism. Remember?” .
“Oh,
yeah…….. Yes…
It was...wonderful…”
“Now
confirm your conversion.” Goddess’s gown was slit in the
middle all the way to the waist, which feature had been concealed
until this moment, when the divine blonde pulled apart the two halves
of her diaphanous skirt, suddenly
and lewdly
exposing her glorious, wet womanhood. “Kiss me!”
Needing no elaboration, Mary knelt in front of her goddess, slipped
her hands greedily onto the smooth, slender thighs before her, and
brought her lips onto the holy, hairless labia offered to her for
worship. As she kissed, Goddess’s pussy lips kissed back.
Soon, painted pussy lips and painted oral labia were making out.
“Fuck
me!” Mary
slid her hands around to cup the goddess’s
buttocks and pull her glorious cunt into her mouth more tightly.
Mary extended
her tongue, first licking, then probing, then rhythmically thrusting
in and out of the delectable love tunnel.
“Drink
of me, sweet Mary,
my lesbian lover!”
As if Goddess’s vagina turned on
an internal
faucet, nectar-like fluid flooded into Mary’s mouth.
“Bathe
in the love of your Goddess! Immerse yourself in
lesbian love!”
Goddess inhaled a long drag on the cigarette she held. Within
seconds, the smoke, which had passed through her body and was now
imbued with her essence, exited through the divine love hole,
enveloping Mary’s head,
and then her body.
Mary felt suction,
then
she was sucked whole into Goddess’s dripping cunt, not knowing
whether she had shrunk to fit or whether Goddess had expanded, and
not caring. There, she found herself swimming in a sea of divine
love juice. She bathed in it, and felt it penetrate through her skin
and hair into her brain, muscle, bone, and organs. At length, she
felt streams of water rinse her off and she slid out of her queen’s
pussy fresh, clean, and saturated with an exhilarating lesbian sexual
orientation to her core.
Mary
saw that she had again transformed. Her hair was now a brilliant,
cranberry violet-red,
her lips, nails, nipples, and labia a black cherry color. Silver and
dark blue eyeshadows covered her eyelids. Her shapely body was
covered from neck to ankles by a transparent long-sleeved
bodystocking
of tight black nylon,
which covered even her hands with sheer gloves.
Every detail underneath was on plain display, her private parts
meriting particular notice. The cigarette materialized again in her
hand, as if it were a customary item for her. Mary took a sharp gasp
of surprise at her brazenly sexual image, then instantly embraced it
with elation, and took a slow, long, natural drag on her cigarette.
“What
are you, Mary?”
“I’m
a lesbian.”
“Are
you straight...or gay?”
“Gay.”
“Are
you a heterosexual or a homosexual woman?”
“I’m…
I’m homosexual.”
“Say
it again.”
“I’m
homosexual.”
“Would
you rather be straight or homosexual?”
“Homosexual.”
“Are
you sure?”
“Yes.”
“Very
well. Since
you have wisely rid yourself of your
ex--the
asshole--and since you now love women, you are now
free…free to live the life you want and to keep company with
anyone you choose. Do you think you will want to date?”
Since
Mary had always thought of “dating” as being a
heterosexual activity, the idea didn’t sound appetizing at
first. “No, Goddess...not men. Please no. Never.”
“But
what if you could go out with women?”
“Women?”
It was as if a brilliant light had just turned on. “Goddess...could
I?”
“Would
you like to date women?”
Before
today, as far as she could remember, she had never thought about
going out with women. But right now, there was suddenly no question
about it. “Oh, yes!”
“And
a woman who wants to date women is called a what?”
“A…a
lesbian.”
“And
what are you now?”
“Oh. Oh, yeah. I’m a
lesbian.”
“So
do you think you can date women now?”
“Yes!”
Mary was feeling sheer elation. “And…and…what
about…” She was reluctant to speak her dark, depraved
desire.
“Girls?
Cute, sexy teen girls?”
Mary
wasn’t sure why she was so interested in the possibility of
dating teen girls, but she was ecstatic Goddess anticipated this
inclination, and Mary nodded her head.
“Yes,
darling. Date them all you want.” Mary reacted internally.
Wow!!!!
“Can
you think of one you’d like to date? Who comes to mind first?”
There
was no need to think about it. One stood out clearly. “Sarah.”
“Ah,
my daughter. You have a thing for her, don’t you, sweetheart?”
Embarrassed,
Mary averted her gaze. “Yes… I…I think I do…”
“No
need to be embarrassed, honey. To be honest, I’m enamored with
her myself.” Mary lifted her head to look into Goddess’s
eyes questioningly.
“Mary…lesbian
mothers and daughters can be lovers, too, you know. In fact…along
those lines...who else comes to your mind as someone you’d like
to date? After Sarah, whom do you want most? Maybe even more than
Sarah? Search your heart.”
After
a few seconds, the answer became perfectly obvious. “Wendy!”
“Perfect.
You two have a glorious future together. As a couple. In an
incestuous mother and daughter relationship. Now that you have
fucked her once, fuck her again and again, over the rest of your
lifetimes. In fact...marry her!”
That
possibility came as a heart-stopping shock to Mary. It was an
impossible and grand and glorious and amazing surprise...although now
that Goddess had said it, it seemed like it had been a wish she had
had, a familiar desire, but, as a prude, had suppressed.
“What?!...But
Goddess...are you…?”
“Yes,
Mary. We’re talking about lesbian marriage. One
women--or girl--marrying another. Living forever in marital bliss.
The right way...the best way...the happiest way...the natural
way...the way it always should have been for you, dear Mary. Women
can and should marry each other. You can marry a woman. You will be
a lesbian bride. What do you think of that, beautiful Mary?”
This
was so new. Mary had been aware of some women in some places getting
married, but she had never personally known any, and the issue, the
possibility had seemed so very far from her. Until this moment. And
now...it was...here……..and it was...pure...excitement…
“...............yes………..
I...I think… I think I like the idea……………”
“You
can marry any woman...or girl...you want, Mary. A sexy woman like
yourself...could have her pick…although...in your heart...you
already know the one you want the most.... Think about it...plan on
it...feel good about it...lesbian marriage…”
“...lesbian...marriage…”
“...to
Wendy…”
“...to
Wendy…”
“No
one would make a better bride for you than your own sexy daughter,
and no one would make a better wife for her than you, her beautiful
mother. Mary, Wendy, your own daughter, is your destined wife.”
The
possibilities recommended to her by Goddess dazzled Mary. The
equipment attached to her sleeping body made sure they struck her as
incredibly desirable and filled her with dizzying happiness. She
could scarcely comprehend the wonderful life being laid out for her.
It seemed too good to be true.
“But...but…really?...
Can it…”
“Yes,
Mary, I can make it happen. But you have to do your part. Did you
know that Wendy and Sarah are going together?”
“Wha…
You mean...”
“Yes,
they are sexually active lesbian girlfriends…and quite fond of
each other, may I add. Why do you think they like each other so
much?”
“Well…I
guess…I guess they are attracted to each other.”
“More
than that, Mary. They lust for each other. And they give
each other what they both want--sex! But why do they lust for each
other?”
“Because
of the way they look?”
“Exactly!
So to compete with them, what do you have to do?”
“Uh…
change my looks?”
“Bingo!
A lot or a little?”
“A
little?”
“Wrong,
Mary! Wrong, wrong, wrong! Do you think your old, conservative look
is going to get you anywhere with beautiful women or with cute,
hot-to-trot teen girls?”
“No…
You’re right.”
“So,
Mary, there are basically two types of women in this world. Prudes
are one kind. You have been a prude...but how far has that gotten
you? An unhappy marriage to a creepy man whom you hate. No real
love. Daughters who are wandering off. One lonely night after
another by yourself. And what about the coming years? Look at your
future as a prude.” An image came distinctly into her mind of
herself in the not-too-distant future. Her unkempt, wiry hair was a
mixture of dingy gray and dull blonde. She wore dumpy, baggy, drab
clothes. Her shoulders were slouched, her curves were atrophied, her
hands were starting to be gnarled and spotted, her eyes were
lifeless, and her face, featuring a big wart on her chin and a
prominent mole on her upper lip, was wrinkled, ashen, haggard,
reflecting a weary life of loneliness, frustration, disappointment,
and bitterness.
“That’s
me?!”
“It
will be if you don’t change your course. It’s up to
you.”
“Oh,
my. Well, what else is there?”
“The
other kind of woman that you can elect to be is a…”
“...slut.”
Mary somehow just knew that.
“Well,
good, Mary. And that’s right. Your only prudent choice is to
become a…”
“...slut.”
“Yes.
To ever have a chance with cute girls you have to become a…”
“...slut.”
“Let’s
talk about that. To be a slut means you can date all the women--and
girls--you want to, and take them to bed. But it also means looking
the part. Do you think you can get away with the kind of clothes
you’ve worn in the past?”
“No…
I’ll want to dress...uh...provocatively?”
“Exactly.
First, show off those dynamite legs of yours. All the time. No
more nondescript, safe pants. No more dresses and skirts that are
too long or otherwise too modest. From now on, you favor short
skirts and dresses--minis and micros, the shorter, the better; and if
they’re not short, they’ll be either very tight or
see-through, something like that--short shorts, like hot pants, and
nylon hose and garter belts and high heels. You love those kinds of
things.
“You
want to show off your lovely ass, too. If you wear pants, they’re
going to be tight and of leather or latex or spandex or something
similarly eye-catching and inviting. If you can put your pussy on
display, do that, too.
“And
then...your tits. They are much too beautiful, too alluring, too
big, too magical to ever hide them. Show them off in every way you
can. No more tame blouses and other tops. Leave your belly and your
back uncovered as much as you can, too.
“You
know, you don’t have to wear a bra and panties all the time.
It would be very exciting for you to leave them off...if not always,
then at least a lot of the time. That would be very slutty. And you
want to be very, very slutty...and ready for lesbian sex at all
times...and you want to broadcast that to other females at all
times...by the sexy, inviting way you look.
“You
don’t care about what narrow-minded people say. Especially,
you don’t care at all about what men think. All you care about
is turning on other women. And, especially, girls. And you won’t
get very far in that regard by trying to be modest. Drop that
nonsense. You’re going to show it all. Tease women with your
body. No more covering up. Let it all out. Show it all.”
“Okay.”
“And
one other big thing, Mary. You are known for being ‘Mrs.
Natural’. Well, that’s going to change. Artificial
beautiful is vastly superior to your old-fashioned ‘natural’
routine. From now on, everything about your appearance is going to
be racy and unnatural. Tell me what I’m talking about.”
“Makeup?”
“Certainly.
You’ll want to wear makeup, heavy, bold makeup, especially
beautiful lipstick. How often?”
“All
the time.”
“Right.”
“And
your nails?”
“Painted.
All the time.”
“Correct.
And they should be long and shaped.”
“Okay.
I don’t know why, but...but I love red. Red
lipstick…red nail polish...red dresses...red hair...red
everything. It just kind of...turns me on. Would it be okay if I…”
“...if
you wear and use red a lot? Yes, darling. That would be perfect.
You’ll look great in red. Especially red lipstick. Applied
often and very, very heavily; merely one or two coats will never do.
You can view it as symbolic, or as a manifestation, of your new
lesbian desires...of your irresistible new allure...of your sexy new
identity...and of your erotic, homosexual new life...
“And
what about jewelry, Mary, my beloved?”
“Oh...right…”
“Earrings,
bracelets, ankle chains, and necklaces. To wear earrings properly,
what are you going to do?”
“Get
my ears pierced.”
“Of
course… And your belly?”
“Ooooo...okay…I’ll
get it pierced, too.”
“And
eventually, maybe a sexy little tattoo or two…?”
“Oh...yeah...maybe…”
“None
of it, not your jewelry or makeup or attire, should be mousy or
conservative, but should be bold and shout out the kind of woman you
really are.”
“A
slut.”
“Precisely.
Mary, you’re going to change the way you look big-time. No
more prude. No more being timid. No more holding back. No more
modesty. No more natural. Forget all that. Those are no longer
your values. Especially no more ‘Mrs. Natural’. How far
has that gotten you?”
Mary
could think of no advantage her being natural in her approach to
beauty ever got her. In fact, the affinity for an unembellished,
natural appearance which she had picked up from her mother now struck
her as one of the great lies of her life.
“Nowhere.”
“When
you think about it, you hate ‘natural’. It has
stopped you from wearing makeup and experimenting with your hair
color and style and trying out revealing clothing. There is nothing
good about it. From now on, everything about you will scream
artificial beauty, heavily embellished beauty, and
sexy, brazen beauty, Mary.”
“Yes…
I’m seeing that now, I think… ‘Natural’
is...stupid. What a waste. I don’t think I want to be
‘natural’ in anything.”
“What
about your hair? Should you just keep it the same, day after day?
Or should you experiment?”
“Experiment.”
“Do
you like your natural hair color?”
“Oh...uh...I
guess it’s okay…but…”
“...but
it’s too natural.”
“Yes.
I don’t want ‘natural’.”
“How
do you feel about experimenting with it?”
“My
hair color? Well...I never have wanted to in the past...but now…”
“Now
you want to, don’t you?”
“Yes.
I’d love to.”
“I
think that’s a good idea. You want to try new hair styles,
too, don’t you?”
“Oh,
you’re right. There are so many possibilities.”
“You’d
like to try all kinds of different looks, wouldn’t you?”
“Yes.
That’d be great. As long as I’m...”
“Sexy.”
“Yes.”
“For…?”
“For
other women. And for...for hot girls.”
“Don’t
worry. You’re going to be. Do not be afraid of extremes,
either, Mary. Be extreme. And change your looks often, sweetheart.
That will really catch the interest of the girls and women you want.
Extreme changes, extreme experimentation, extreme immodesty, extreme
sexuality, extreme depravity…”
“Yes…
I like it all.”
“No
more inhibitions. No more ‘safe’. No more ‘modest’.
No more ‘conventional’. No more ‘conservative’.
No more ‘natural’. No more ‘good’. Instead,
unapologetic experimentation. Shameless, ‘in-your-face’
allure. Wicked, merciless seduction. You’re going to blow
them away—meaning other women and girls, because you only care
about appealing to them, and never to men--and force them to look at
you and lust for you. From now on, you are sexy, evil Mary. You are
going to try everything you never have before, everything you thought
was too scandalous, too racy, too daring for you. You are a wild,
wanton, inviting, promiscuous lesbian women. Look the part.
“That’s
how you are going to seduce Sarah and Wendy and others you want,
Mary. By being beautiful and sexy and daring, as you never have been
before, but as you always will be from now on!
“You’re
going to be a very hot, desirable woman with your provocative,
seductive, experimental, artificially beautiful new looks. You’ll
be very popular with the girls, Mary. You’ll be able to
date--and seduce--any girl or woman you want. Many sexy girls and
beautiful women will desire you.
“Let’s
see what possibilities lie in your future, Mary, my love.”
Images
returned to the purple sky. A succession of erotic scenarios
cascaded before Mary, each one portraying her as an exotic homosexual
femme fatale, either on a lesbian date or in some other sapphic
romantic or sexual situation. Mary would not only see and hear all
participating characters, including herself, but she would know all
of their thoughts and desires, and feel their emotions and lusts, as
programmed by Hecate. She would be more than a mere observer, but
rather it would seem to her that she really was each of the various
depicted versions of herself, and living the part as if it was really
her, the way she truly was and wanted to be. All the words, acts,
feelings, and choices she would experience would strongly seem to be
her own.
Each
scene convincingly showed Mary her potential for overpowering allure
and consequent lesbian romantic and sexual conquest, rapture, and
fulfillment through artificial beautification, wanton attire and
accoutrements, and shameless, provocative exhibitionism. Hecate’s
goal was to dramatically alter the way Mary viewed herself and what
she was comfortable looking like and wanted to look like, and what
she sexually was willing to do, wanted to do, and liked to do; to
ultimately transform Mary’s self image and identity; to
terminally subvert her previous standards, morals, and values; to
diametrically revise her goals; to permanently reconstruct her
priorities; to utterly remake her desires; and to irreversibly
reshape her life--all in a corrupted, lascivious, sexually depraved
lesbian direction.
Mary
heard the doorbell. Oddly, she couldn’t remember who her date
for the night was, but she descended the stairs with excited
anticipation, nonetheless, knowing it was a female, a desirable
female of one type of another. Mary had almost worn something from
her latex collection, such as her turquoise-colored latex leggings
and matching long-sleeved, scoop-necked latex crop top, with high
heels, knowing the way that ensemble would show off her legs, ass,
crotch, and breasts in frank detail, and draw attention to them. She
had put the outfit on and modeled for herself in the mirror, and
absolutely loved the breathtaking effect it had on her and would have
on other women, as well. But then she decided she would rather wear
a dress, and something in her favorite color--red. Thus, she was now
dressed for a night on the town in a shiny, wet-look, metallic
candy-apple-red, skin-tight vinyl tube dress with an oversized,
exposed, suggestive zipper running up the back and a hem but three
inches below her crotch.
As
did the alternative, the latex outfit, this figure-hugging dress did
a great job showing off all of her curves, so she was more than
satisfied, plus it had the advantage of easier access to her pussy,
if need be...and she was fairly confident that there would be a need.
There always was. Sheer red nylons--the lacy welts of which were
only partially covered by the dress--shiny red heels, a lacy, sheer
red garter belt, sheer red lace thong panties, big gold hoop
earrings, gold bracelets, a gold belly piercing visible through a
large midriff cutout, and a gold necklace bearing a double-Venus
symbol completed the provocative ensemble. Mary’s
now-golden-blonde hair, an unnatural but stunning, lustrous metallic
color, was up in an intricate braided crown. Her
fire-engine-red-painted lips blazed the way before her, matching her
fingernails.
The
mother of two opened the front door to find Cynthia, Wendy’s
beautiful red-headed friend, Mary’s heart almost stopping with
the thrilling discovery. It came back to her, via memories
manufactured for her by Hecate--how the teen had stopped by one
morning to drive Wendy to school; how Mary had loved the girl’s
pretty looks, sultry personality, and flirtations, and had instantly
been smitten by her; how the foxy girl had returned the next morning
after Wendy had left for school, this time just to see Mary; how they
had sat together closely in the living room; how the conversation had
been flirtatious, giggly, and touchy-feely, until they had shared
their first tender kiss; and how Mary had agreed without hesitation
when Cynthia had asked her out. Mary somehow knew this wasn’t
their first date since then, and tonight they were headed out
clubbing.
“Are
you ready to go, girlfriend?” the teen--who wore a long-sleeved
bandage club dress of sheer, peek-a-boo black nylon lace mesh and
fuchsia lipstick and nail polish--asked cheerfully, as she leaned in
for a lingering kiss on Mary’s lips.
Wow,
she looks hot! I wonder if Wendy realizes what a babe her mom is.
That
not being enough for either, Mary dragged her foxy date inside,
closed the door, and made out passionately with her for five minutes
in the foyer, the red-haired teen’s fuchsia-nailed hand finding
its way up the older woman’s short dress into her panties for
some pussy play, vindicating Mary’s choice of attire this
evening. Knowing there would be opportunity for more later, as they
would certainly end up in bed together again before the night was
over, they got themselves somewhat under control and walked
hand-in-hand out to Cynthia’s car.
In
a flash forward, Mary saw that they had not made it to the club, but
rather, as Cynthia had suggested a detour, they were now pulled to
the side of a mountain road, overlooking the city below under a
starry night sky. Cynthia was on the hood of the car, panties off and
legs spread. Mary’s dress was bunched up around her waist and
her strap-on was just entering the juicy young cunt. The redheaded
teen pulled Mary’s shiny golden-blonde head in--the hair of
which was no longer up, but was flowing down now, glowing like a
shimmering golden treasure in the moonlight, and blowing about
sensually in the gentle night wind--for an open-mouthed kiss.
That
scene faded away, as another appeared. Mary saw herself walking
leisurely along a stream, holding hands with Kayla, whose
reddish-brown hair was blowing loosley in the wind and who wore a
sleeveless romper of sheer, light-blue nylon--which showed her
nipples poking provocatively into the shiny, thin
material--medium-blue heels, and pale-pink lipstick and nails. Mary
was in a translucent, pink-lavender-silver-and-white floral-printed
sundress of sheeny, thin polished cotton-polyester with bold
cut-outs--one which left her back exposed to the waist, except for
criss-crossed strings across the back, revealing the absence of a
bra, another exposing her midriff, and a third being a generous
teardrop opening between her breasts. The loose, flirty,
eye-catchingly short skirt exposed her long legs, which were covered
with sheer pink nylons held up by a white garter belt with pink
frills. She strolled on white five-inch high-heeled ankle boots.
Her hair, a few inches beyond shoulder length, very full with
plentiful, loose curls and with bangs, was dyed various pastel
shades, swishing about her beautiful, heavily made-up face in
shimmering locks of violet, silver, pink, and blue. Her lips, nails,
lids, and nipples were painted silver.
The
two playfully swung hands as they strolled, until they came to a
waterfall, which they decided to enter, drenching them. Mary’s
wet, now-transparent sundress clearly revealed her underlying
hot-pink thong panties and silver-tipped breasts. As the water
engulfed them, Kayla unfastened her romper and let it slide off into
the water, afterwords standing in the water topless, as she wore no
bra, and in her white lace bikini panties. Mary likewise doffed her
skimpy, soaked sundress, only her wet panties, wet pink nylons, wet
garter belt, and wet white boots remaining. Both topless now and
their kiss imminent, they embraced and gazed into each other’s
eyes. Their naked breasts pressed into one another’s as their
eager painted mouths joined.
When
that image left, it was succeeded by one of Mary and Claire walking
into a movie theater. They were dating, decidedly more girlfriends
in love than mother and daughter. Mary had worn one of her several
pairs of skimpy hot pants. This one, of high-gloss plum-purple
latex, was so abbreviated and tight that the lower swells of the
woman’s ass globes were bare to the world. Her asscrack, camel
toe, and the darkness of her black satin bikini panties, which were
imprinted with scattered little red hearts, were also on display
through the clingy, slick, translucent material. The view had been
driving Claire bonkers--who had made sure to stand and walk behind
her mother at every opportunity--as they had driven to the mall,
strolled from the parking lot, got tickets, and walked into the
multiplex.
Mary
was well aware of the distraction her derriere could pose to other
women and girls, especially when she displayed it right. She was
proud of the hour-glass way her large breasts, narrow waist, wide
hips, and firm, curvaceous derriere all fit together so enticingly.
She made sure to put her breasts on priority display, but, after
doing that, she was most delighted if she could draw lustful sapphic
attention to her rear, too. She definitely knew how to do that, and
did, constantly. Today, with Claire, was definitely no exception.
The
sight of her mother’s beautiful, smooth bare legs, exposed all
the way to her crotch, had also been fueling the blonde daughter’s
lust tremendously. The younger woman had already felt them up on the
drive, as Mary likewise had with her daughter’s equally sleek,
enticing legs, but they both wanted more and deeper contact. Mary was
quite cognizant of and confident and intentional in the effect of her
legs, ass, breasts, face, hair, attire, and all other elements of her
potent allure on her daughters and on other girls and women, and, as
they walked down the hallway toward their theater inside the
multiplex, she gave Claire several teasing swings and undulations of
her legs, rear, and torso, seductive glances, and flirtatious tosses
of and play with her long, curled platinum-pale hair.
False
memories came to Mary of an alternate version of her past with
Claire, elements of which could well unfold in future reality. Her
mind now told her that her eyes had been opened about a year in the
past by a woman who had crossed her path named Serena Powers, that
Mary had come to realize that she was wasting her life as a prude and
a straight woman, that she had divorced her husband, that she had
become a lesbian, and that she had embarked on a life of
licentiousness and pleasure. She had tried to correct the
prudishness she had instilled into her daughters, with mixed results.
Wendy had readily taken to the new direction, one of homosexuality
and loose morality, which Mary had urged upon her, but Claire had
been initially more reluctant. With the help of lesbian roommates at
college, though, Claire had gradually come to see the light, too, and
she had gone on some lesbian dates, although the sexual contact,
which she liked, had not gone far, as she had found it difficult to
abandon her old conservative, good-girl nature.
When
Claire had come home from college for the summer, Mary decided to
more personally help Claire finish the transformation, for her own
good. They went shopping together, and Mary bought Claire
appropriately revealing attire, although she didn’t wear it
much at first. Claire learned more about makeup, although she didn’t
start wearing it often yet. They started watching lesbian porn DVDs
together, and Mary gave her other girl-girl adult material. Mary
would set Claire up on lesbian dates, although no relationships
developed from them.
Claire
was making progress, yet she seemed to be holding back, not
committing completely to a lesbian lifestyle or to sexual
promiscuity. She had not yet gone “all the way”
sexually. Mary wanted to help more. At that point, Mary had extra
motivation, in that she was starting to develop feelings for her
pretty older daughter.
One
night, during a heart-to-heart mother-daughter chat, Mary discovered
that the black-haired Claire had always wanted to know what she would
look and feel like as a blonde. As Claire spoke, Mary had the
impression that a big change in her daughter’s appearance, in a
sexier, more artificially glamorous direction, would do wonders in
changing her concept of who she was and what she was willing to do,
that going blonde might be a key to fully unleash the lesbian bad
girl inside her. Mary also was carnally interested to see such a
change. However, Claire could not muster the nerve to take the big
plunge.
Mary
advised Claire that, if she was apprehensive about taking a big jump,
then she should consider starting off with a smaller step.
Accordingly, Mary took Claire to her own beautician, who lightened
and tinted Claire’s black locks to charcoal grey. Claire loved
it, and Mary was so smitten by Claire’s sexy new unnatural look
that she decided to cross the line and ask Claire out.
They
started dating. Claire also started wearing makeup more often than
in the past. A month later, they agreed to take another step with
Claire’s hair color, this time to a lighter silver-grey, a
medium shade on the scale of darkness. As if by magic, Claire’s
inhibitions started to fade away more. She wore makeup regularly and
more heavily and more boldly. She used more of the immodest clothes
Mary had bought for her.
With
changes in appearance, moral and sexual changes soon followed in
Claire’s life. The attraction between mother and daughter grew
and they started dating more steadily, becoming lesbian girlfriends.
Claire subsequently disenrolled from her college across the country
and enrolled at a local one so that she could be with Mary all the
time. Their relationship, however, was more romantic than sexual.
There was sex, too, just not hard-core sex. Reluctance to go all the
way into lesbian sex and a licentious homosexual lifestyle lingered
within Claire.
Mary,
having exercised patience with her foxy daughter, but knowing it was
now time for Claire to take the next, big step—and, driven by
growing lust for the changing young woman, wanting to start having
hard-core sex with her—and seeing her own example was crucial
in the development of her daughters, decided to lead the way for
Claire. She had her honey-blonde hair bleached out and toned to a
very light, silvery-ashy-white shade of platinum blonde. When Claire
saw it, her lust for her mother mounted wildly and she, too, knew she
wanted to take her relationship with her mom to the next level. She
decided to take the final step in her own transformation. She went
blonde, all the way, asking for the exact same shade as her mother’s.
Mary’s
hunch about the predicted effects of Claire lightening her hair to
the max proved correct. As of that day, Claire’s conservative
reserve started to completely disappear. She no longer saw herself as
a good girl, or felt like one, in any way. Instead, she felt both
lesbian and slutty to the core. Mary, totally smitten with the girl,
took her into her bed, where they consummated their love “all
the way”. That had occurred two months ago. They were now a
committed lesbian couple.
It
was dark inside the theater, as the previews had already started,
affording Claire cover, at last. She slipped her hand onto the curvy,
latex-covered fanny of her mother as they climbed the steps on the
side aisle. Mary smiled. Claire had a thing for her ass, and Mary
loved encouraging her obsession whenever she could. She’d
especially do anything to get one of her daughter’s memorable
rim jobs. As they shuffled across a row of seats and before they
took their seats, Claire groped her mom’s ass flesh and ran a
teasing fingertip into her ass crevice through the soft latex and
satin, eliciting a quiet, delighted gasp from the older woman.
Once
the two hot-for-each-other women were seated, Mary looked lovingly at
her platinum-blonde daughter, whose lips and nails were painted deep
emerald green, appreciative of and turned on by Claire’s
beauty, bold makeup, pale new hair color, skimpily-clad body, and
invasive caresses. Claire likewise loved her mother’s looks,
loved how her deep tan contrasted with her long, ultra-light blonde
hair, loved how her blue eyes stood out against her heavy eye makeup,
consisting today of heavily-applied purple mascara, black eyeliner,
and silvery purplish-grey and lavender eyeshadows, loved how the
incestuous mother’s lips and long nails were painted a dark
matte lavender, loved the way she dressed so provocatively, setting
an example to her daughters, and loved her adventurously erotic
spirit which had brought them together in an incestuous sexual and
romantic relationship.
They
both also loved how much like each other they now looked, with blue
eyes and other similar facial features, similar voluptuous bodies,
and not only the same hair color now, but the same hip length as
well. Mary, looking much younger than her true age, was often
mistaken for an older sister to Claire. Sometimes they would
coordinate and wear the exact same hair style, and other times they
would do they own thing, often experimenting, both in hair style,
makeup, and attire, but always with the objective of turning the
other on to the max. Today, Mary’s hair was loose on the sides
but pulled back on top, and finished with bouncy, feminine curls all
the way down, whereas Claire’s, parted in the middle, hung
straight and loose except for a prominent braid on one side which was
tied at top and bottom by cute green ribbon bows.
Claire
did not know that Mary planned to cut her light blonde hair into a sleek,
straight, neck-length blunt-cut bob as a surprise, which she would
part either in the middle or off-center. Mary envisioned herself
with the new style. It occurred to the mother that she somewhat
resembled Sharon Stone, one of her favorite celebrities, and that the
hair style she was contemplating would make her look like the actress
in the movie Basic Instinct. Mary reflected that her decadent
new morals were not much different from those of the character Stone
played in that movie. As she thought about it, the similarities in
looks and morality, or lack of it, made her smile inwardly. She also
contemplated changing her hair color again, now that she had gotten
Claire hooked on being a blonde and now that she, Mary, had gotten
into experimenting with her looks. She realized that she loved
experimentation, and wanted to see what she would look like as a
brunette or, better yet, as a redhead...or something maybe else...
Claire
wore a low-cut, body-hugging t-top of a satiny forest green
material--and no bra. The scoop neckline dipped down close to her
nipples and showed off her cleavage dramatically, while the shiny,
clinging material displayed the shape of her large breasts and
nipples in detail. Her skirt was a short, loose, flared, pleated
skater’s miniskirt of satin in abstract green, white, silver,
and black patterns. She made sure it slid high up her thighs when she
sat down, putting her neon-green thong panties on periodic, easy
display.
Both
wore high heels, Claire’s being dark green and Mary’s
being dark purple, complementing her provocative hot pants and pastel
violet spandex tube top--which had a silvery sheen--a silver
necklace, silver-and-amethyst hoop earrings, and a tattoo of berries
in a garland encircling her upper right arm, which matched one on her
daughter’s left arm. Both females had almost all of their
smooth, slender legs exposed, and, after they raised the armrest
between them up and out of the way and scooted together as closely as
possible, the long, sleek, naked legs rubbed together frequently,
which was one of their favorite enjoyments in sitting together at the
movies or elsewhere. Wearing nylons was the only thing that would
have made it better, they knew, which they both normally did, and
each knew well that wonderful sensation of her nylon-covered legs
sliding against the other’s. But this, bare leg flesh on bare
leg flesh, was fantastic, too.
While
Mary was perfectly delighted with her look, especially with her
bleached blonde hair, heavy makeup, and tempting hot pants, and was
overjoyed by how well her tube top exposed her smooth, flat stomach
and her silver-and-amethyst navel piercing, which bore a double-ring
lesbian symbol, showed her cleavage, defined the two underlying,
protruding mountains that were her breasts, and attracted attention
to her curves with the glittery, shiny finish of the material, she
nevertheless envied Claire’s top. She looked again at that top
and it’s contents, as she had been doing repeatedly on their
date so far, unable not to. The way her daughter’s large boobs
so visibly jiggled in the satiny fabric, the urgent way her nipples
looked like they were trying to poke through, the way the creamy
breast flesh bulged over the neckline--it was all such a turn on.
Mary knew she could not keep her hands to herself for long with such
a spectacle staring her in the face. And Mary wanted the same look.
Plus, she hated being out-slutted by anyone, even her own daughter.
I need a top just like that one. Maybe I’ll borrow it...or
buy one for myself...but...more sheer than hers...transparent
maybe...oooo, yes...and even tighter...
As
the movie began, the two gazed at each other, neither nearly as
interested in the movie as they were in each other. Soon their lips
met. The scenario flashed ahead. In the darkness, mother and daughter
made out heavily. Their hands explored without inhibition. Mary was
inside her daughter’s enticing blouse, helping herself to
Claire’s phenomenal boobs. After feeling up each other’s
breasts, belly, and thighs, Mary slid a hand up her daughter’s
brief skirt into her panties to explore her pussy, and Claire found
her way into her mother’s hot pants and silky panties to
explore the pussy, the ass, and the anus contained therein.
After
that, Mary saw herself in a restaurant on a dinner date with Raylene,
the attractive brunette who had helped her in the Hecate human
resources office that morning in real life, and who wore a little
black dress. They were smoking and drinking, a mostly-empty bottle
of red wine on the table standing as witness of their inebriated
state. The refinement of their language and of their bearing had
been degrading with every drink. Both women were flirting
shamelessly and were playing serious footsies, with their black high
heels sometimes on and sometimes off.
Mary
wore red lips and nails the color of fresh maraschino cherries,
heavy, dark eye makeup, sheer black nylons having a lacy design
incorporated, a black garter belt, and a figure-hugging, sleeveless
dress of a shiny silk-satin material colored wine red, a bright
version of that color rather than a dark, subdued shade, although a
little darker than her lips. The electrifying dress was backless to
the waist and opened up in the front below the high halter neck into
a spacious cut-out which extended across almost from nipple to nipple
and descended past the navel--which bore a silver-and onyx
piercing--leaving her quivering cleavage on near-pornographic display
and her stupendous, creamy, braless boobs popping out with the least
motion.
Mary
loved her breasts--or, as she preferred, her “tits”,
“jugs”, “boobs”, or “whammers”--and
loved showing them off. She was aware of them and of their
effect on other females at all times. She knew that they were very
big and very beautiful, and that they should be shown off to
other women and, especially, to girls to the greatest degree and in
the most arousing way possible in any given situation, to distract
them, to tempt them, and to seduce them. In fact, she wished she
could get away with routinely going topless in public without getting
arrested; but, given that society wasn’t ready for that yet,
she nevertheless pushed the limit as her standard practice. To hide
them, she believed, would be the true crime--the crime of
prudishness--which she was determined not to commit, not ever.
That
being said, it must be mentioned that Mary loved bras, and had a
great variety of them, most all of them slinky and silky and
revealing, many of them sheer or lacy, some with nipple cut-outs or
merely a consisting of a shelf--shelf bras--to support her breasts
but not cover the nipples. When she wore a bra, she was continually
aware of it luxuriously cradling and hugging and lifting her breasts,
aware of the silky contact of the material over her areolae and
nipples, aware of the way a bra could and, in her case, always did
show off her big breasts with an enhancing, eye-popping,
pulse-pounding, mesmerizing effect, and aware of the earthquaking
effect she would have when she removed it for the eager eyes of
another woman...or for a sexy teen girl… That was the part she
liked best about a bra--taking it off in the company of another
female, as part of a seduction or otherwise for making sapphic love.
But Mary often went braless, as well, and this was one of those
nights.
On
this night, conceding to a modicum of modesty--but it was really fake
modesty, designed to tease and provoke lust rather than to simply
cover up--Mary had covered her nipples and areolae, barely, with
attention-getting glossy black-enameled metal cone pasties, which
peeked out regularly with her every movement. She had contemplated
wearing either something from her collection of nipple jewelry, or her silver pasties instead, but then had elected the darker,
more eye-catching black pasties, which made it look like she had wicked
black nipples. She loved the look. Besides, black matched her
lingerie, and there was no doubt that at some point in this evening
she was going to be standing in some private place with Raylene in
only her heels, nylons, panties, and garter belt, and having her
pasties color-coordinate would be just the right touch. She also
knew that eventually the pasties would come off, exposing her nipples
as having surprisingly been heavily painted reddish black the whole
time underneath the pasties. She couldn’t wait to get Raylene
alone.
The
nearly knee-length skirt of the dress was a tight, pencil design.
There was a closeable slit running up from the dress’s hem on
one side, which was open now and was baring her leg all the way to
the hip. Her ass and wide, womanly hips were on glorious display
whenever she stood up or walked. Her long, glossy, medium-dark
reddish-brown hair was in a beautiful, intricately woven half-up,
half-down style, which included a braided crown and bangs, and she
wore dangling silver-and-ruby earrings.
It
was easy for Mary to tell that her date was enthralled by her, the
lovely woman repeatedly eyeing her hair, her breasts, and her lips,
in particular. The brunette woman’s desire to taste her shiny
lips and to get her hands inside Mary’s dress was transparent,
as was Mary’s receptivity to any such advance. Impelling that
prospect along, Mary leaned forward, allowing a black-tipped breast
to dangle out of her dress, slipped a red-nailed hand over her
companion’s equally red-nailed hand, inhaled a cloud of smoke
from her cigarette, and blew it into her date’s red-lipped
mouth, the act resulting in a long, sensual kiss, one shade of bright
red lipstick blending with another. So delicious and so desired was
their oral union, and such a harbinger it was of deeper lesbian
sexual pleasures soon to follow, that they mewed in unison into each
other’s mouth. “Mmmmmmmm…”
Raylene
asked where Mary wanted to go next, “...my place or yours?”
Mary
next found herself in a hallway, rock music playing loudly not too
far away, being led by the hand by a young woman. The black leather
miniskirt and cropped black leather jacket, the blue-on-black
ponytail, the hallway, the music--it was all so familiar, and the
atmosphere was comfortable. Of course! I’m Officer Elena’s
date at the VV Club! How awesome!
Mary’s
metallic smoky-lavender hair, parted in the middle, without bangs,
fell to her waist in thick, shiny waves. Her face was painted
heavily, with lips a matte grape-purple and eyelids laden with thick,
black mascara and eyeliner and silvery-purple eyeshadow. She wore a
skin-tight, long-sleeved bodicon microdress of silver lame in a
liquid-shine finish, which had a bra-dress design, incorporating a
skimpy exposed silver bra into the bodice which cupped, separated,
lifted, revealed, and highlighted her exquisite, colossal breasts.
Also, the dress had lace-up sides, exposing six inches of her skin
from top to bottom through the laces. To top it off, she wore
iridescent nude nylons, a silver garter belt, purple-silver five-inch
heels, silver tanga panties--she had borrowed Wendy’s, having
an obsession with them, and had made sure, by sniffing them, that
they had been used by her daughter first--large silver hoop earrings,
silver bracelets, a silver ankle chain, and an amethyst belly
piercing.
Elena
paused in the hallway, turning around with an inviting blue-lipped
smile, obviously taken with her tempting companion, and wanting
another look at her...and probably something more. Readily taking
the hint, Mary took her goth date into her arms for a long, lover’s
kiss, playing with her silky blue-on-black ponytail with one hand and
wrapping the other hand around the younger woman’s narrow, bare
waist, loving the satiny texture of her skin, as well as the slick
sensation of her purple lipstick-coated lips mashing into the blue
lipstick coating Elena’s lips. When Elena opened her mouth,
Mary immediately sank her tongue in. Mary had not dated a goth girl
other than Elena, but she found herself highly drawn to the exotic
look and to this sublime model of it in her arms, in particular.
After
making out several minutes, they then proceeded, hand-in-hand again,
into the main dance hall, where they first knocked down a couple of
drinks and then started dancing together in the crowd, initially
facing each other. Mary found that she loved the kind of raucous
rock music that was blaring—it was just her type—and
loved swaying and swinging and pancing with its sensual, pleasing,
heavy beat. The beat and the music, the churning, kaleidoscopic
atmosphere, the curvy feminine bodies swimming around her and rubbing
against her own curves, and being there with Elena, a young goth
woman of so much allure, for whom she felt such passion, to whose
body her body was so drawn--it all felt so wonderful. Mary loved to
go clubbing with a hot girl like this.
Mary
lifted her long, heavy, glossy mane of dusky lavender waves into her
hands above her head, knowing that she was elevating her mammoth
mammary globes enticingly for her date, as well, to the point that
her nipples popped over the top of her dress temporarily, and that
she was presenting a sight so bewitching, it seemed to her, that few
girls who saw it wouldn’t want to get into her panties.
Twirling around, she let her hair loose, to fan out and cascade down
like a metallic lavender waterfall. True to expectations, Elena,
captivated anew, swooped Mary in around the waist, kissed her
soundly, and whispered into her ear, “I can’t wait to get
you alone, you teasing, hot little bitch! I’m going to fuck
you so hard!” Mary smiled, knowing she was really getting to
her date, exactly as she had desired.
When
they separated and resumed dancing, Mary discovered a lit cigarette
in her hand, from which she took a long, sexy drag, looking at Elena
seductively as she did. Again unable to resist her older date, Elena
took Mary’s face into her blue-nailed hands to pull it to hers
before Mary released her lungful of smoke, which the
blue-and-blue-haired young woman then inhaled as the MILF blew it
into the goth girl’s mouth, which act turned into a long, smoky
lesbian French kiss. “Mmmmmmmm,” both women coed in
mutual lust as their tongues danced together, Elena caressing her
date’s face and long, silky greyish-lavender hair.
After
they pulled their mouths apart, and Mary started to get lost in the
music, in the erotic atmosphere, in the exotic beauty of her goth
companion, and in the dancing, Elena cuddled up to her from behind,
first hugging her around the waist, then kissing her cheeks, lips,
shoulders, and neck numerous times while running her hands all over
Mary’s front. Slipping a hand underneath the hem of Mary’s
microskirt, the younger woman found Mary’s panty-clad vulva.
“Mary,
wearing panties tonight? You didn’t last time. You are such a
nasty tease! But we can ‘work around it’...like this…”
Elena’s blue-tipped fingers invaded the panties and Mary
gasped sexily. “Oooo, you’re so wet! I can’t wait
to fuck you! Mary, you’re soooooo fuckin’ hot! Let’s
get out of here...”
Mary
couldn’t help but smile to herself. Although she didn’t
wear them all the time, and loved the feeling of freedom and
readiness for sex when she left them off, she nevertheless loved
panties, loved wearing them, loved the silky feel on her ass and
cunt, loved the way they reminded her of lesbian sex, loved enticing
other women with them, and loved the role they were playing this
night.
Mary
had no affection for plain, classic “Granny” brief
panties, of course, as a prude would wear, nor for the reasons prudes
wore panties, for hygiene and modesty. That was neither her style
nor her purpose. To Mary--reflecting new sentiments being programmed
into her head and distilling into her heart, and which she would not
be able to evade for long once she returned to her real life--panties
were, or ought to be, a homoerotic item, and only that, a sensual
thing intricately connected to lesbian sex, worn to tease, to invite,
and to tempt. They were there to make one’s pussy a tempting
mystery, there to draw attention to it, there to come close to
revealing it, or to outright exposing and framing it, there for a
female hand to slide into them and play with one’s pussy or
ass, and there to be removed to prepare the way for lesbian sex.
Whenever Mary pulled on a pair of her panties, she enjoyed the way
they made her feel like a lesbian, and a slut, and think of sex with
another female, and she looked forward to them being assaulted or
pulled off by another woman or girl, ideally, or by herself, on the
way to making sweet homosexual love.
Mary
felt the same way about panties on other women and girls, or merely
belonging to them. Whenever she saw or spent time with a female to
whom she was attracted, she always hoped to see her panties, and
often sought for some way to do that, or, better yet, to run her
fingers over them and into them, or even better, to pull them off.
To Mary, panties of or on other women represented a potential for
lesbian love and, perhaps, a challenge to her to bring that to pass.
A particular treat for her was to get panties that another beautiful
woman or girl had worn, to smell the heady fragrance of pussy and
ass, or to wear them herself, or even to lick them.
Hecate
programmers told Mary that, in the world of this scenario, she owned
many panties, of various styles--high-cut, hipster, bikini,
boyshorts, tanga, thong, g-string, t-string, open crotch, open
back--and materials--nylon, satin, silk, latex, leather, PVC,
lace--and other qualities, such as frilled, sheer, etc., and in all
manner of colors, prints, and finishes. Panties were almost an
obsession with Mary, and certainly a passion, she loved them and
their homosexual connections so much. And tonight, Wendy’s
silver panties which she wore had served her intended purpose well,
having worked their enticing magic on Elena, and lured her hand into
them. Mary guessed that it would not be long this night before Elena
would pull them down and off Mary’s legs for hard-core lesbian
sex. Panties, indeed, were wonderful. But so was going without
panties…
That
scene faded and another appeared. Mary was in a hospital, a patient.
“Nurse” Jennifer—the young sunny-blonde attendant
who had accompanied Mary’s gurney as it had been wheeled
through the Hecate facility in real life a short time ago—leaned
over Mary’s bed, feeling her forehead. Mere inches from Mary’s
face, the nurse’s creamy, large breasts almost spilled out of
the low-cut white latex fetish “uniform” she wore, one
even more abbreviated than the tiny costume dress she had worn in
real life.
“Well,
I think you’re ready to go home, Ms. Love.” With a
flourish, Jennifer whipped the bed sheets and blanket off of Mary’s
body. Expecting a drab hospital gown, Mary was delightfully
surprised to find that her body was covered, barely, from the tips of
her breasts down to the tops of her thighs, by a transparent
jade-green nylon babydoll nightie. Underneath, her gold-painted
pussy lips and nipples, which matched her golden nails, lips,
eyelids, and hoop earrings, were plainly displayed. Her hair was
waist-long and medium golden-brown, streaked through with chunky
light golden-blonde and platinum-blonde locks. She wondered at her
appearance, but was highly pleased by it, and was even turned on by
herself.
“It
turns out that, after four days of ‘testing’ you, there
was nothing wrong with you at all. In fact…I hope you didn’t
mind,” Jennifer smiled naughtily, “that I made sure all
of your female plumbing is in wonderful working condition…remember?”
Memories now came to Mary of the showers and baths (the pretty
nurse, going above the call of duty, getting in with her to soap up
every nook and cranny of her body, and having Mary “exercise”
by doing the same to her); of the intimate “therapeutic”
massages (which focused on body cavities, mammary glands, and
genitalia); of the repeated and very personal “diagnostic
explorations” of her mouth, breasts, vagina, and anus (to “rule
out” “deformity”, “infirmity”,
“pathology”, and “hormonal imbalance”); of
the various sublime “experiments” the nurse conducted on
her body; and of the way the nurse had decorated her lips, nails,
and, especially, the private parts of her body erotically with gold
paint as a parting gift.
“Ohhhh,
nurse…you’re so pretty… I…I loved my stay
with you! Thank you so much… But…but why…why am
I dressed like this?”
“Don’t
you remember? Sexy lingerie was your idea. You said it was
your normal when you’re with pretty girls you like. Girls like
me. You had a bunch of your lingerie brought from home after we met
and you found out I was going to be your nurse. You’ve been
dressing more or less like this for me all week, every day and every
night something new. This pretty green babydoll is nothing compared
to what you wear most of the time. Ms. Love, you know perfectly well
that you teased me...and came on to me...until I couldn’t
resist you! You act so innocent, but you are such a nasty slut! I
admit, I did my part, too. I couldn’t help myself. You are so
hot! What a great fuck you are!
“Plus,
your daughter Wendy is picking you up…and you wanted to look
your sexiest for her, too. You’ll be ready for bed when you
get home. There, Wendy will be administering ‘extended care’
to you. It will be a continuation of your ‘treatments’
here, to make sure your reproductive system stays ‘healthy’.”
“Hmmmm…
That really sounds good… But I’ll miss you.” Mary
reached up and pulled the blonde down for a deep kiss. She realized
that kiss was far from their first.
The
blonde nurse stood up and strolled to the door. “Don’t
forget. I have your phone number. Expect a call.”
“I’m
looking forward to it, Jennifer.” Mary’s voice was sultry
and full of the promise of naughty lesbian fun.
Jennifer
paused at the door, looking at Mary, scanning her body over silently,
apparently pondering something. Then, instead of opening the door
and getting a wheelchair to wheel her patient outside for Wendy to
pick her up, as Mary had expected, Jennifer locked the door.
Unzipping her skimpy, tight, white latex uniform and letting it slide
to the floor, she returned to get into bed with Mary. “But I
guess you won‘t be leaving quite yet, my beautiful Ms. Love…”
In
this series of fantasies, Mary would be called “Ms. Love”
repeatedly, instead of “Mrs. Love-Livingston”, her
current married name. Hecate’s purpose was to reinforce its
advocacy of divorce to Mary’s mind, to suggest that, in these
scenarios, she no longer was a married “Mrs.”,
influencing her real-life subconscious mind to accept a divorced
status as her destined and preferred future, and that, seeking to
sever all connections to her ex or soon-to-be-ex and their marriage
and to symbolically finalize her liberation from men in general, she
had dropped or would soon drop Bruce’s surname, Livingston.
As
the scene changed, Mary was playing miniature golf in a setting of
flowers, trees, and lush greenery. Her pink-rose-gold hair, cut in a
shoulder-length blunt cut style with full bangs, and styled in loose
corkscrew curls, gleamed beautifully in the late-afternoon sun and
swished playfully about her face, which was painted with glistening
darkish scarlet-red lipstick, matching her almond-shaped nails, and
with smoky-bronze and dark denim-blue eyeshadows, heavily-applied
black eyeliner, and navy-blue mascara as she and her girlfriend,
Lauren, tried one shot after another, giggling, touching, hugging,
and kissing between shots.
Lauren,
now with shiny medium-dark silver-gray hair with bangs and flowing
loose and wavy except for a top section pulled back and formed at her
crown into a thick braid running down her back, and made-up with dark
purplish-red lipstick and nails, wore a black halter-neck semi-sheer
bustier top of silk-like viscose, with revealing soft bra cups and a
cropped bodice of floral lace, which was held together with a
prominent lace-up front, and which had straps criss-crossing her
otherwise mostly naked back, partnered with skin-tight faux-leather
leggings in a shiny graphite color and dark-red five-inch heels.
Mary
found herself almost overwhelmed with gratitude for her
girlfriend--as moved upon by Hecate programming. She was so grateful
that they met, that she, Mary, was beautiful and sexy enough to
attract and to win her over, that they became lovers, that she,
Lauren, was so very beautiful, that she dressed and did herself so
hot, and that she was so awesome in bed. What a wonderful fuck she
was. How great it was to date and to fuck sexy teen girls...
Mary
found it impossible to keep her eyes and her hands off of Lauren’s
tempting, lustrous ass, and she caressed and grabbed it at every
opportunity. Mary knew she had a “thing” for firm teen
girl-ass, and Lauren knew it, too. Mary loved the cute, round asses
and anuses of pretty teen girls--the younger the better--and all the
things a woman like her could do with them, loved them more than
anything in the world, other than their fresh pussies and pert
breasts. She also got a high watching young teens play with each
other’s nubile bodies, ass play in particular. Lauren,
desiring to keep Mary’s lusts for her on a constant boil, made
a point of catering to her obsession with young asses, and routinely
wore tight leggings, pants, shorts, skirts, and dresses of leather,
PVC, satin, nylon, spandex, silk, latex, and the like to highlight
her derriere for Mary (and Mary had a wardrobe of similar items she
wore to entice Lauren and other females just as much, as well).
This, she knew, drove Mary to utter distraction, and today’s
tight, shiny leggings were a prime example of what Lauren wore to
turn Mary on. It was definitely working.
Lauren
could likewise keep neither her eyes nor her hands off Mary’s
body, displayed as it was in a flirty, flouncy, pleated skater
miniskirt of a wet-looking, bright metallic crimson-red
polyester-and-polyurethane material cut in a flared, circle A-line
silhouette; sheer white nylons held up by a red leather garter belt;
five-inch red high heels with ankle straps and polished-silver metal
stiletto heels; and a clingy, lightweight, long-sleeved, cropped
t-shirt of transparent white polyester/spandex mesh, which had a
glossy, shimmering metallic sheen and was sprinkled with little red
stars, through which her flimsy little red leather bralette and
plenty of creamy, dangling, bulging breast flesh were blatantly
visible above the bare midriff. She also wore transparent white
t-string latex panties decorated with red frills.
The
naughty little panties, as well as the lacy welts of her nylons and
her garters, flashed regularly into view, as the wind relentlessly
tossed her short, loose, shiny skirt about thighs and hips and
frequently blew it up to her waist--much to the delight of both Mary
and Lauren, and without any attempt on Mary’s part to resist
the breezy onslaught. Mary loved showing off her legs like this, and
always did so when with cute teen girls, as well as with her women
friends, and had an extensive collection of short skirts, dresses,
and jumpers--many very daringly revealing--lingerie, short-shorts,
including hot pants, hosiery, and high heels to allow her to do so.
Whenever she could display more than her legs, she never failed to do
that, as well, as in the present situation.
After
their game, they paused at an out-of-the-way side table for a drink,
a smoke, kissing, and more groping, which they both understood to be
a mere prelude to what they would do later. The fantasy fast
forwarded to Mary’s bedroom. Both Mary and Lauren were naked
except for their nylons and heels, Mary lying on the bed on top of
Lauren. Mary wore a red metal strap-on, which she was rhythmically
plunging into Lauren’s pussy. There was nothing she loved
more, the Hecate machine told her, than this, fucking a teen pussy.
Mary
loved strap-on dildos and gloried in the mastery of their use which
she had achieved, she was made to believe. There was something
magical, she was impressed, about strap-on dildos, but she also felt
that, for her, employing them was quite natural, as if she had a
destined, liberating, and empowering connection to them. Using one
made her feel delirious with joy and power, wicked power, as it was
feeling now with Lauren, as well as dirty, perverted, and debauched,
but gloriously so. Sometimes she would feel as if her strap-on were
her own real penis, and that she could feel its entrance into a
vagina, the friction of the pistoning action, and the blissful
nuances of culminating orgasms.
Indeed,
using a strap-on to fuck a woman or girl made Mary feel so powerful,
so sexually supreme. She felt capable of doing anything a man could
do in a bedroom to a woman--or girl--except lesbian strap-on
intercorse was so much more gratifying and beautiful and so much more
expressive of love for both partners. The one thing a man could do
that she couldn’t was impregnation...and yet...the magic of
strap-ons sometimes seemed almost capable of...of even that…and
she would love to do that...to knock up a sexy teen girl...if
not every teen girl she came across...………
Goddess was capable of many miracles…….. In any case,
Mary’s love of strap-on dildos and screwing teen pussies with
them was strong. They were erotic items and sapphic acts she would
never want to live without.
Mary
pursued her violation of her Latina girlfriend’s steaming pussy
until the pretty teen screamed with climaxing lust, followed closely
by Mary’s similar exclamation.
Next,
Mary saw herself on the sofa at home in a short, sheer, slip-like
negligee of glossy, medium-dark royal-blue silk. Fine, filmy,
clinging, transparent dark-blue nylon mesh ran over her shoulders and
all the way down her arms as an integrated part of the slip-negligee.
Her braless state was obvious, her finger-like nipples poking
provocatively through the diaphanous material. Her g-string of light,
bright silver-blue satin with light-blue frills made intermittent
appearances as her little negligee slid up her thighs with her
movements. She wore silver high heels, shiny smoky-silver nylons held
up by a silver garter belt, large silver hoop earrings encrusted with
sapphires, pale denim-blue matte lipstick and fingernails, and dark
mauve and blue-silver eyeshadows, to accompany heavy black mascara
and eyeliner. Her blue hair, so dark as to be nearly blue-black, was
heavy, thick, full, hip-length long, glossy, loose, straight, and had
thick bangs. Both Wendy and Mary absolutely loved it.
Wendy
sat next to her, cuddling, and heavily made-up, as well, with lips,
nails, and nipples painted a deep, darkish but vivid ruby red,
glittery gold eyeshadow, heavy black eyeliner, and black-and-gold
mascara, her hair a shimmering, heavily reddish rose-gold color, without bangs and partly done up in a braided crown, but otherwise flowing in
thick, loose curls around her face down over her breasts and to the
small of her back. Golden hoop earrings dangled from her ears,
matching her gold double-Venus necklace, gold bracelets, and shiny,
black six-inch high heeled pumps. The makeup on both females
was immaculate, perfect, and dramatic, as was their norm, especially
when with each other, and when dating other girls and women. Both
were aware of their unnatural, sexy, made-up beauty and inviting
attire, and it added significantly to the superb erotic tension
prevailing between them in their living room.
A
sentiment came to Mary about Wendy’s development. She...she
is taking after me… Her makeup...her hair...her clothes...her
attitude...her values...her sexuality...her lesbianism...the way she
fucks... I’m so proud of her… I’m glad I’m
able to set an example for her...and that she’s maturing like
she is… She’s becoming such a hot little slut...
It
was at-home date night, and they were watching two prized selections
from Wendy’s lesbian porn collection. The DVD which they had
consumed first had featured Samantha, Wendy’s favorite porn
star, in a hard-core romance between two sisters—the blonde one
of whom looked uncannily like Wendy--and the other DVD, the one
finishing up right now, portrayed an innocent, straight,
at-first-resistant high-school girl being seduced into lesbianism by
her beautiful female teacher--who looked like Mary. Mother and
daughter cuddled in silence and contentment, their hands helping
themselves to whatever explorations they wished, and their mouths
joining frequently in love. In fact, Mary had already fucked Wendy
once that evening, between their watching of the two DVDs, both
having been moved upon to it by their first selection. This second
number was having a similar effect, and they were both ready to go at
it again. It was so nice to be home together, getting worked up by
lesbian porn and having sex without restraint with each other.
Mary
started to notice a few more things as her eyes scanned the scene:
An upturned bowl of popcorn on the floor, looking like it had been
kicked off the coffee table in some moment of passion; three dildos
on the coffee table, one a smooth ivory strap-on, one a hand-held
dildo of polished granite with subtle parallel ridges along its
length, and one a red double dong--one of them appearing to be wet
and recently used, while the other two were seemingly waiting for
their due time; an ash tray containing two stomped-out cigarette
butts, one with blue lipstick marks and the other with red; and
Wendy’s diamond ring, which matched Mary’s. The
evidences of the fun and affection they shared made Mary smile.
Wendy,
however, was not only a beautiful and sexy sight, but also a shocking
one. She was also clad in a g-string, hers in plain sight and
consisting of a tiny, transparent black latex pouch tied on with a
few strings, clearly revealing her shaven, red-painted pussy lips.
Her legs were covered in black, high-shine latex stockings which were
held up by garters dangling from her corset, also of black,
high-shine latex. It was a beautiful piece of lingerie, decorated
with gold filigree in strategic places and consisting of transparent latex bra cups, which left her red-painted nipples and milk-engorged
breasts plainly visible, and a bodice below the bra cups wrapping her
bulging, impregnated belly in gleaming, stretched black latex. The
item laced up in the back and, while snug, was designed to provide a
maternity fit without injury to mother or baby.
“Wendy!
What…what’s going on?!” Mary reached over to run
her hand across her daughter’s curvy maternal belly, the taut
latex feeling noticeably sensual to the touch, and imparting a
heightened erotic tone to their interaction.
“Come
on, Mom. Stop playing innocent. You’re the one who did this
to me!”
“M-me?
I…I don’t under—”
“Mom,
don’t worry. I love that you knocked me up. Just hold me and
kiss me…and fuck me again…” With that, Wendy
slid her hands into her mother’s beautiful, glossy, dark blue
hair, pulled her in, and smothered the older woman’s questions
with her sweet, ruby-red young mouth.
It wasn’t long before the teen slipped a red-nailed hand into
her mother’s silky blue g-string panties and found her
clean-shaven pussy lips, causing Mary to moan into the kiss. It
seemed to Mary that these acts were so normal, so natural, and so
beautiful.
Mary
realized that she always kept her pussy cleanly shaven, and was so
glad it was in that condition tonight. The impression swept over her
that lesbian women always shaved their pussies, and that a clean,
bald pussy was, essentially, tantamount to being a lesbian pussy.
And she certainly wanted a lesbian pussy, one that always invited the
fingers and the lips and the tongues and the sex toys of other women
and girls--especialy girls. She was so happy to have a “right”
pussy, a clean, shaved, ready lesbian pussy, and was glad that, as a
good mother, she had made sure Wendy followed the same course of
sapphic sexual hygiene, even while pregnant.
As she
closed her eyes during the long kiss which ensued, images of the
process which led to Wendy’s pregnancy flashed into Mary’s
mind. She saw a cross-sectional view of her reproductive system and
a greatly magnified image of an egg cell being extracted from one of
her ovaries via a long, narrow suction tube. The egg was then
processed in a lab, which reverted it to its stem cell state and
cloned it via an intricate, automated machine. Once sufficient stem
cells were cloned, they were then tampered with chemicals, radiation,
and other methods to alter DNA and cellular structures, converting
the cells into a new type of sperm cell--female sperm
cells--which were engineered to be able to only produce female
offspring and which were mixed with other ingredients to make a
feminine version of semen--colored pink or any other color desired by
clients. That fluid was then ready to be sucked into a special
mechanical strap-on dildo for immediate or near-future use.
One
extraordinary night some seven months before, Wendy’s mother
now remembered, Mary wore the special strap-on and had sex with
Wendy. At the height of Mary’s memorable orgasm, artificial
semen from the storage container in the strap-on was pumped through a
tube inside the shaft, exiting from the tip of the white phallus and
into her daughter’s vagina--impregnating the fertile teen. The
scene displayed in Mary’s mind included anatomical cross
section views of the pertinent parts of their bodies and of the
phallic equipment.
“What
are we going to name our daughter?” asked Wendy, breaking their
long, sweet kiss.
The
comprehension of Wendy’s maternal condition and the vision of
what she, Mary, had done to bring it to pass left Mary somewhat
stunned, although the “memory” just presented to her mind
was so graphic, detailed, and indelible that it left her unable to
question its veracity. She “knew” that she had, indeed,
knocked up her own daughter. Mary’s baby was going to have a
baby--Mary’s baby. But she didn’t know quite how she
felt about it. Yet.
“I
don’t know…I haven’t thought of it...”
“Well,
one thing’s for certain. Our new daughter will definitely be a
lesbian. We will raise her under the precepts of Goddess…”
Mary’s
lingering sense of morality made her instinctively question Wendy’s
proposal. “Honey...are you sure? What if...”
But
Wendy, speaking in the name of Goddess, quelled any disagreement her
mother might have voiced. “Stop, Mom. Don’t even try to
prude-out on me. It’s the will of Goddess that she’s
going to be a dyed-in-the-wool lesbian all the way. Do you know what
that means, Mom?” asked Wendy quizzically.
“She
will become a depraved, immoral lesbian slut in lifelong service to
Goddess, just like us...” replied Mary automatically, without
thought.
“Of
course, but you’re missing something more, something very
important.” Wendy fingered the twin Venus pendants of her
necklace, causing the pendants and the wedding ring worn on Wendy’s
red-nailed hand to glint in front of Mary’s eyes, encouraging
her mother to see the connection between the symbols of lesbiansim
and of marriage, while licking her glossy red lips seductively. “It
has to do with you and me...with our relationship...our type of
relationship...the best part of our relationship…”
Imagery
of Mary and Wendy dating, of their first kiss, of their first night
sleeping together, of their engagement, of their marriage ceremony,
and of their subsequent passionate, consuming plunge into lesbian sex
for days on end flashed through Mary’s mind in rapid
succession. That was the most precious time in Mary’s life, she
understood, and recalling it shot her through with passionate love
and stirring, renewed lust for her daughter. Mary now knew what Wendy
was talking about.
Incest.
That
word passing through Mary’s mind shot a wicked thrill into her
womanhood. That was a factor in their love which made it all the
more exciting, all the more enjoyable, all the more unifying, and all
the more beautifully depraved.
Incest.
Oh, yeah…mmmmmm...
Mary
finally answered. “Our daughter will learn and master lesbian
incest, the purest form of lesbian love, and one of the most
deliciously perverted types of love, too…like you and I know
so well.” Mary ogled the pregnant form of her teen wife,
particularly eyeing her round belly and heavy, milk-laden breasts
greedily. “She will know every inch of our bodies as we will
know hers, and she will also engage in frequent lesbian sex with
other female relatives who are blessed by Goddess…”
“That’s
right, Mom. As Goddess has taught us, incest is wonderful. It is
indeed the highest form of love, and it’s so perverted that it
proves that female family members in such relationships are without
any doubt extreme sluts without any morals...just the type of women
we want for our relatives. So...as we agreed before...our little
girl will be steeped in lesbian incest from the start. She’ll
grow up with lesbian sexual experiences, but we’ll keep those
acts to within the family...at least at first. The only thing she’ll
know, for a while, is lesbian incest.” Mary smiled at the
future they were planning for their baby.
“However,
there is one aspect of lesbian incest which our little one can never
know, the way things now stand. She could never know the love of a
sister...because she doesn’t have one. Our daughter
would only know the love of her mothers, aunts, and cousins--which is
pretty good--but she still wouldn’t know the love of a sister…
You made sure that Claire and I became lovers, and you seduced your
sister. I can’t imagine my life without sex with Claire, and I
bet you feel the same about Aunt Judy. You don’t want our
daughter to miss out on that kind of sisterly love...do you? And,
just think, if we were to have to travel in the service of Goddess
and leave her home alone, she would be very lonely. She needs a
sister. And she won’t have one…...unless…...”
“Honey,
are you suggesting we have another—?”
Does
she want to get pregnant again?... What a little whore…
That’s why I love her so much... Yes… I can help you
out, my darling slut… Don’t think this is the last time
you’re going to be knocked up by your mother... Too bad I can’t
knock you up again right now, you sweet little cunt! I’d so
love that. In fact, I’d love to keep you pregnant all the time! But...in lieu of that...and in the meantime…just like you wanted...I will fuck
you again tonight, you hot little pregnant teen whore.
Fucking
a beautiful, pregnant teen girl, particularly her own pregnant
daughter, had come to be the highest high Mary had ever known--outside of actually impregnating her, which had been the supreme moment of her life. She
felt she could do it all day and all night and still want more.
Certainly she wanted to do it again tonight, many times more.
Mary looked her teen wife over again...her sleek latex stockings and corset...her beautiful reddish hair...her intoxicating makeup...her pregnant curves… This girl was such a turn-on... Despite her initial alarm at Wendy’s condition, Mary loved the exotically slutty, fuckable way her daughter-wife looked, and found herself responding to her with heightened attraction and arousal.
No wonder I love her so much. She’s such a sexy little slut. I’m going to fuck you again and again and again, until your brains ooze out your ears.
No wonder I love her so much. She’s such a sexy little slut. I’m going to fuck you again and again and again, until your brains ooze out your ears.
Mary
looked over to the coffee table to locate the dildos they were using
tonight, and debated which one she was going to use on her daughter
next, and whether she might want to get a different one from their
extensive collection in their bedroom...until Wendy made it clear
that she had a different vision for bringing a sister-lover for their
unborn baby into the world, a way which would do it faster than the
course Mary had supposed they would be pursuing.
As
she had told her mother a minute before, Wendy did very much want
Mary to fuck her again tonight--she, like Mary, had particularly come
to love their sex while her belly was swollen with a developing girl
fetus--and the sooner, the better, but now, on second thought, she
concluded that could wait a little. Instead, the time had come for
Wendy to do what she had been secretly planning on doing for the last
few weeks. She knew Mom would absolutely love it when she recovered
from the shock of the impending revelation.
“Mom,
please close your eyes. I have a surprise for you...” Wendy’s
shiny ruby lips curved in a wicked smile. Mary obeyed and closed her
eyes. She felt, with a sense of loss, Wendy’s hand withdraw
from her panties and felt and heard Wendy arise, step away some, and
make some rustling and stepping sounds.
“You
may open your eyes now, Mom.” Wendy was now standing directly
in front of Mary.
A
gasp escaped from Mary’s kissable, pale blue lips when she saw
a large ten-inch, pink strapon, supporting by a pink leather harness,
protruding from her pregnant daughter’s groin. The phallus
gleamed from the lubricant coating its surface. White goo dripped
from the hole on the bulbous end of the shaft, which was aimed
portentously in Mary’s direction.
“That’s...that’s
a Hecate insemination strapon!” Mary stood up precipitously,
putting up a hand to cover her open mouth.
“Yes,
Mom, and I’m going to fuck you with it!” said Wendy in an
authoritative, sassy tone.
“Where...where
do you get that?!”
“Same
place you got yours.” Wendy’s voice started to mellow,
and to even get a little coquettish. “When I explained my
desire to knock my wife up, they were fully on board.”
Strutting
slowly up to her mother, with a more serious and tender look on her
face, Wendy embraced her mother, looked lovingly in her eyes, and,
her voice trembling with emotion, said, “Mary, my wife, my
love. Do you want to be pregnant too? Do you want to give our future
daughter a sister? And not only a sister...but also a lesbian wife?
Do you want to raise both of them, with me, to marry each other and
to bathe in their incestuous love as soon as possible?”
Over
the course of a few minutes, Mary found that her attitude had changed
dramatically from one of reluctance and incredulity to one of
complete enthusiasm and joy.
Wow.
What an awesome idea! Me carrying our next baby. Why didn’t I
think of it?
“Well?”
Wendy’s tone was once again blunter and sluttier. “What
do you think of your baby girl’s plan for your pussy, my dear,
fucking mother? Do you want this up your steaming-hot cunt?”
Wendy groped and wagged her depraved phallus anew, as if threatening
her mother’s pussy both with moral destruction and with
heavenly bliss. “Do you want me to get you nice and
pregnant...whore?”
Any
inhibitory responses Mary might have had were suppressed and replaced
with extreme lust and desire by the indoctrinating equipment attached
to her reposing body. Hearing her daughter address her
aggressively with sexually explicit language only fueled the flames
more. Further, the television automatically began showing another
porn video, this one of lesbian incest involving a stunningly
beautiful mother named Traci and her young teen daughter named
Natasha, which Mary found herself watching, mesmerized, for some
indeterminable time before turning her attention back to Wendy, the
video having stoked her arousal all the more, instilled into her the
desire to meet the actresses sometime, and made her want to do
everything with Wendy that she had just witnessed in the video.
Mary's
eyes were beaming with tears of joy. “Wendy... I... I love you
so much! Yes, yes, yes!!! I want to give our baby a proper sister,
and, more than anything, a proper incestuous wife! I want to raise
them with you. As lesbians. As depraved sluts. As incestuous, wicked
teens. As married wives eating each other’s pussy at every hour
of the day.
“Wendy,
I’m so excited about this! My beautiful daughter is going to
screw me and impregnate me! I would definitely love to have another
daughter with you! The sooner, the better!” Mary sat down on
the sofa, pulled off her silver-blue g-string panties, leaned back on
the sofa, lifted her silky blue negligee up to her waist,
flirtatiously fanned out her beautiful blue hair around her over her
shoulders and the back of the sofa, and opened her legs wide--like
the whore she was convinced she surely was--in anticipation of the
event.
“Wendy,
please, my love…”
“What
a fuckin’ whore you are, Mom! And you are soooo beautiful.
And your body…wow... You turn me on so much! Those are the
things I love most about you. What a great mother you are. And a
great wife. But Mom, I want you to blow me first!” ordered
Wendy while stroking her shiny pink cock.
To
encourage her mother to act, she unlatched the garters from her
stockings, reached behind her back to untie the laces of her black
latex maternity corset, and pulled the shiny, clinging article off
her body, tossing it casually to the side. She then stood topless in
front of her mother-wife, her curving naked belly and milk-bloated
tits with bright, red-painted nipples staring the older woman
blatantly in the face, tempting her mother even more deeply, as did
the big pink strap-on girl-penis bobbing up and down ominously
between her latex-covered legs, which were perched on her gold high
heels.
Following
her wife’s directive, Mary slipped forward off the sofa and
knelt down in front of her daughter. She slowly ran her blue-nailed
fingers up Wendy’s latex-covered legs, then rested one hand on
Wendy’s left thigh while gripping the strapon with the other.
She stared lovingly at the phallus, admiring its length and girth,
and observed white goo oozing slowly from the hole on its tip, before
kissing it with her denim-blue-painted lips.
Mmmmmm…
This pretty teen cunt...my own sexy daughter...is going to fuck me!
And knock me up! I can’t fuckin’ wait! Mary
enveloped the wondrous phallus with her pale-blue painted mouth as
best she could and started to lick and suck. Soon it would be inside
her eager twat, the two wives anticipated fondly, the hot female
bodies of mother and daughter joined in incestuous and marital union,
unnatrual love, and glorious, perverted lust, the powerful girl-penis
squirting its erotic load into Mary Love’s womb, her daughter
making her a mother once more, as well as a grandmother for the
second time, very possibly the hottest, sexiest lesbian grandmother
of all time.
“Ahhhhh….yessssss…”
whispered Wendy while tilting her head back and pulling her mother’s
blue-haired head and blue mouth more tightly into her crotch.
Ohhhhh….yessss…,
thought Mary, her emotions running high, as she ran her hands
onto her daughter’s ass, caressed it lovingly, and rabidly
sucked the instrument of her impending pregnancy.
“Good,
whore. Get up and lie on the sofa.” Mary stood up and,
sitting down on the sofa, again spread her legs apart as she had done
before. Inflaming her daughter, she ran a blue-nailed finger along
the wet, blue-painted lips of her cunt.
“You
mean like this?” Her tone was teasing and sensual.
“No,
lie down, all the way!” Mary reclined on the sofa and opened
her legs as wide as she could. “That’s better…”
The blue-haired mother played obscenely with her sopping pussy for
her daughter.
“Is
this better, honey?”
“Oh,
yeah... much better! Now I’m going to knock you up soooo bad,
Mom, you sexy slut!” Wendy’s expression was almost
demonic as she stood next to the sofa and looked down on her mother,
feasting her eyes on her mother’s pussy. “It’s
your turn, bitch! Your turn to be pregnant. Your turn to have
another baby. With me. By me. By your own daughter! And by my
wonderful, mother-fucking girl dick!” Wendy grabbed her
phallus with one red-nailed hand, squeezed it visibly, and shook it
menacingly down at her awestruck mother.
Wendy
straddled her mother, looked down on her, tilted her head, played
with a lock of her thick, shiny, richly red-rose-gold, dyed hair, and
smiled at her mother with devilish enticement on her made-up face.
“You and I are going to make a lover…” Wendy
patted her rotund stomach gently. “...for this lezzie girl.
Right now.”
My
daughter is soooo beautiful… She’s soooo sexy…
I’m so lucky to be hers...to be married to her! And now to get
fucked by her...and knocked up by her… This is toooo gooood...
“Fuck
me. Fuck me, my love! Make me pregnant, just like I did to you!
Knock me up, like the dirty, incestuous slut I am!” Mary
closed her eyes with bliss as she felt the warm phallus splitting her
pussy lips, then slide in all the way. Soon the daughter was pumping
her mother’s pussy rhythmically, then with increasing force and
speed. Mary moaned in lust and fulfillment. “Ohhhhh, yeah.
Fuck me more, my sweet, slutty daughter....my sexy, whore wife...
Mmmmmmmmm. Fuck me...knock me up...ohhhhh, my love…”
As
her daughter-wife ravaged her reproductive system, Mary heard Wendy
scream with orgasmic pleasure. “Ahhhhhhh! Oh, Mom...I looooove
you!” The beautiful mother soon felt her vagina and cervical
canal filling with and bathing in a warm liquid, and knew female
semen, loaded with female sperm, was flowing into her oh-so-receptive
womb, there to combine with an ovum from one of her ovaries. She had
the thrilling feeling--call it “maternal instinct”--that
that cellular union was, in fact, happening at that very moment.
As
her own orgasm overwhelmed her, Mary exclaimed, “Oh, Goddess!
That's it! I'm pregnant by my own daughter, my lovely wife, Wendy!
It's so wicked, so extreme, so perverse...and I love it! Thank you,
Goddess, thank you!"
Next,
Mary saw herself walking along a beach. Her glossy, hip-length
black-cherry hair, styled in a half ponytail with no bangs, was
blowing free in the wind, the late-afternoon sun lighting up the
beloved redness in her hair. She loved having red hair, and
any shade of it would do--but the wilder and the more unnatural, the
better--including this beautiful near-black shade. Her lips and nails
were painted a glossy blood red. She was with a girl, a very young
and very pretty teen girl of Asian descent, with collarbone-length
hair, cut with bangs, dyed light ash brown, so ashy as to almost be a
beautiful, unnatural, shiny gray, and fixed into two non-braided
pigtails tied off with cute medium-blue ribbon bows. She wore
plum-red lipstick and fingernails. Their joined hands swung happily
as they strolled along the beach. At first Mary didn’t know
who the girl was or what they were up to, but she didn’t care,
being excited just to be there with the cute, sexy girl.
Mary
understood that she had given the girl a swimsuit of Mary’s own
liking to wear, one which was calculated to acclimatize the tween to
expose her body in public. The ice-blue material was very thin, very
shiny, very clingy, and semi-transparent. A one-piece design, it
covered her front from neck to crotch, but allowed her slim
silhouette, narrow hips, small A-cup breasts, and pussy lips to be
easily discerned. Her little nipples were particularly eye-catching,
poking into the slick material prominently. Her backside was totally
naked, except for a string buried between her ass cheeks and another
around her waist.
However,
Mary’s semi-transparent, metallic gold sling-style micro suit
was more revealing yet. The two narrow straps which joined behind
her neck and ran vertically over her chest barely covered her
nipples—but not much of her blood-red-painted areolae--leaving
almost all of her mountainous mounds out in the open, the firm,
bulging flesh wobbling, quivering, and swinging with essentially no
impediment with every sandy step she took. The little strap running
up between her legs sank deeply into her ass crack and her cunt
slit--a designed-in feature--leaving her pussy lips entirely on
display. Her backside, as was the case with the girl, was as good as
completely naked. To on-lookers, from the back it looked like a nude
woman and girl were passing by.
Though
she was walking on sand, Mary nevertheless wore four-inch high-heeled
gold, ankle-strapped pumps. For a second, she wondered at that. But
then she remembered that she always wore high heels,
everywhere. The exceptions were few. She loved high heeled foot
apparel, the higher, the better, and the way they called attention to
her legs, and the way she looked so sexy for other women and,
especially, for girls in them. She even wore them at home most of
the time, when cooking, when eating, when doing housework, when
receiving guests, when entertaining, when relaxing, and even when in
nothing but lingerie...or even when in the nude. In fact, that was
one of her particular enjoyments...to stand before the mirror, or
before a woman or a hot girl...naked...shod only in her heels...or
her heels and nylons...
Mary
became aware of her lewd exhibition and of the women and girls—there
were no men at this beach, but mostly, it seemed, mothers with
daughters in their teens—whom she would pass who were turning
their heads to take a good look at her. At first she wondered about
her choice of swim attire, but immediately she started taking
pleasure in her display and in the power her body exerted over other
females. She knew that the only thing important to her was how much
she turned other women and girls on--especially girls.
Then
Hecate filled in memories for her. Mary worked for a lesbian escort
agency which specialized in older-younger liaisons and in training
young girls, but sometimes adult women, as well, in the ways of
sapphic love. An integral part of the training was the breaking down
of traditional values of modesty and chastity and the instilling of
an immoral, slutty attitude. Mary’s most common assignment was
for her to seduce some unsusecting girl and to make a raving lesbian
slut out of her. Typically, the mothers of the targeted girls were
the clients who hired the agency to make their daughters into
lesbians, for a variety of reasons, the most common of which was that
those mothers lusted after their daughters, wanted them to become
their incestuous lesbian lovers, didn’t feel confident
initiating the conversion themselves, and felt they could trust
“professionals”, like Mary, with the task. Sometimes a
mother would hire the agency to make two daughters into lesbian
lovers for each other, perhaps as a gift to them, sometimes a female
hired them to make her sister into an incestuous lesbian, sometimes a
daughter hired them to turn her mother gay for her, and sometimes a
woman or girl wanted the sexuality of a female friend or acquaintance
transformed, usually to make that person into the client’s
lesbian girlfriend, lover, or wife, but sometimes to eliminate a girl
or woman as a competitor for a guy by turning her gay. The cases
involving the fomenting of incest were always Mary’s favorites.
Mary
had the understanding that, in this version of the world, there were
a lot of mothers who wanted sex with their daughters, daughters who
wanted sex with their mothers, and sisters who lusted for their
sisters, that lesbian incest was a fairly common and semi-accepted
desire and practice, as was lesbian love and lust, in general,
including involving female youth, and that her agency’s
services were in high demand. She also perceived that women like
herself--lesbian prostitutes--in fact, held a position of esteem in
their society, at least among many women. She also somehow knew that
occasionally one of the “pros” would end up stealing away
the heart of a converted girl for herself, but that fact was not
widely known. Mary had not done that yet, but she found herself
tempted to make this darling Asian girl an exception.
Sun-Hi
Kim, the beautiful Korean-born mother of the innocent,
sexually-naive-and-inexperienced girl with Mary this afternoon, had a
more unique objective in mind. While she, too, found herself
attracted to her thirteen-year-old daughter, her main objective was
to prepare Suzu to eventually qualify to enter the rigorous
competition and training back in Korea which would lead to her
daughter, Soo-jin, whom they nicknamed Suzu, joining a k-pop girl
group—and making Mom a lot of money in the end. The mother had
heard, whether true or not, that lesbian girls were favored in the
selection process, as the members of any given girl group essentially
lived together much of the time and the managers frowned on the girls
getting boyfriends, which could cause jealousies, distract from
practice time, camaraderie, and performances, and split groups up,
while seeing advantages in the girls forming romantic and sexual
relationships within their group, in that such liaisons would, it was
thought, knit a group more closely together, give their on-stage
flirtations and sexiness with each other more realism, and make the
public speculate about the relationships and sexualities within the
group more, for free publicity.
Mainly
for this reason, to give Suzu an advantage when trying out for a
k-pop group, Sun-Hi wanted her young daughter transformed into
lesbian. An additional reason was that Sun-Hi’s marriage was a
miserable one. She had grown to detest her selfish husband, and hoped
a lesbian daughter would avoid the same fate, that of marrying a man.
Suzu
was very much a normal Korean-Amercan girl. She attended an
all-girls private junior high school, was a dedicated student, was
already accomplished on the piano, and was taking dance, gymnastics,
and singing lessons in preparation for k-pop tryouts. She had a few
friends, all girls, with whom she socialized, and she was kept away
from boys. She knew nothing about sexuality, having been kept as
innocent and untainted as fresh snow. That is, until the day Sun-Hi
had introduced her to Mary.
Sun-Hi
herself had never had any in-person lesbian experience so far in her
life, nor did she consider herself a lesbian, particularly, but she
was highly intrigued by female-on-female sexuality. Her husband was
an aficionado of Japanese porn and, although he mainly watched
male-female DVDs, which revolted her, through his interest she had
discovered lesbian Japanese porn DVD’s, which had become one of
her secret pleasures. She had found herself particularly drawn to
productions depicting sapphic older-younger and teenage-teenage sex.
In fact, Sun-Hi had so much been taken by one of the young Japanese
porn actresses, Suzu Minamoto, whom she had seen act the part of a
schoolgirl in love with a female classmate, that Sun-Hi had given her
daughter that actress’s name as a nickname.
Mary
knew much of Sun-Hi’s and Suzu’s background and believed
that the mother and daughter would eventually click much better if
Sun-Hi became as much a practicing lesbian as Suzu was destined to
be. But of more bearing on the issue of Sun-Hi’s sexual fate
was that Mary had, in their brief encounters to date, come to develop
almost as much lust for the beautiful Korean mother as she had for
Suzu. Therefore, Mary planned a separate seduction of Sun-Hi into
full-blown, “hands-on” lesbianism, for which she would,
of course, as a professional, charge a surcharge for “additional
services”, after the deed was done.
Mary,
then, was a lesbian “escort”--or prostitute--a job she
relished--whose primary current assignment was to seduce this cute
young
girl, Suzu, and turn her profoundly and permanently
into both a lesbian and a randy, wanton little slut. She would
instill her with a particularly keen, lusting lesbian affection for
young women around her own age, the kind she would eventually find in
k-pop girl groups, but would also bring the girl to see incest with
her mother as a highly comfortable and exciting prospect, as well,
which Sun-Hi had not particularly requested, but which idea Mary
liked and would throw in in as a surprise freebie.
Sun-Hi
had introduced Mary to her daughter as a kind of teacher or governess
or companion, who was to “instruct” her in various,
largely unspecified matters, but mainly pertaining to her development
as a proper young woman, it was explained, and which would include
sex education, and had instructed Suzu to cooperate with Mary in
every way. Their sessions together would be called “dates”.
Suzu
had from the start been enamored with the lushly beautiful and sexy
“Ms. Mary”, as she had come to call her, who had taken
such a flattering interest in her. Mary had, by their second date,
told the girl that she, Mary, was a “lesbian” and a
“prostitute”, or a “slut”, and that Suzu
would be learning more about what those terms meant on succeeding
dates, and that she, Suzu, would in time also become a lesbian and a
slut like Mary.
This
late afternoon at the beach was their fourth date and the pretty
young tween had already made good progress. Over the course of their
previous dates, which included having normal fun, Mary had introduced
her young companion to concepts of sexual orientation and sex, had
made the case for female homosexuality, had shared several items of
soft lesbian porn with the girl, getting Suzu started on a
preoccupation with it, had discussed ways one girl can appeal to and
turn another girl on--which had included introducing her to sexy,
immodest clothes and to makeup, and giving her cosmetics and some
provocative attire, such as the lipstick, nail polish, and the
swimsuit she now wore--and had demonstrated some measures of
girl-girl love personally, which had included giving the tween her
first tastes of another female’s lips and sexual caresses, to
which Suzu had been clearly receptive.
Mary
had been given wide latitude in the way she trained her young
charges. It was Mary who had suggested to this girl, with the
approval of the mother, that she color her hair from black to light
ashy gray-brown, and also have her hair cut, taking off five inches
in length and getting a fetching blunt-cut with full bangs. Mary had
taken the tween to her own beautician to do that on their most recent
date, two days prior. Though the result had been very fetching, Mary
eventually wanted to make the girl a blonde. She wanted the girl to
develop a completely new identity--one she would associate with Mary,
the lesbian prostitute, and with being a sexy, abandoned lesbian
herself, a bad, queer girl, instead of a wholesome, straight good
girl--and to see a different, superior, more arousing girl, a loose,
wanton lesbian girl, every time she looked in the mirror.
Little
did Mary realize, whether in her real, conscious mind or in her
subconscious mind in this fantasy world, that her conversion plan for
Suzu was identical, at its core, to Hecate’s approach to
transform Mary: Break apart the self-image she had developed through
her life, one of an unassuming, straight, moral, chaste, and modest
person--and in the case of Mary, a religiously devout person--and
substitute for it an opposite one, one of an individual detached from
conventional morality and devoted to wicked lesbian lusts, carnal
sapphic pleasure, erotic perversions, licentious homosexual
indulgences, artificial, adventurous beauty, and wanton
exhibitionism. Make her see herself as a totally different person,
one far from the circumspect habits and tastes of her past, one
capable of and willing to explore all lascivious lesbian desires and
opportunities which might wander into her heart or cross her path.
Give her hands-on experiences calculated to ingrain her new thoughts,
affections, proclivities, and self-image deeply into her behavior and
into her soul.
Mary
now had romantic feelings and lust for the pretty, changing
Korean-American girl but, of more importance, Mary was certain Suzu
had developed a big-time crush on her, exactly as hoped for. Today
Mary was going to exploit that and leap ahead with the corruption of
sweet young Suzu. As part of the plan, Mary was going to make it
clear that they were becoming a lesbian couple, and what that meant.
As
they walked, Mary noticed that Suzu repeatedly eyed her body,
especially her magnificent, swinging tits and gaping cunt.
Delighted, Mary joined her young date in spreading out a big beach
towel and laying down next to each other. While Mary pretended to
sun, the girl could not keep herself from looking over, again and
again, at Mary’s body, especially at her pussy, which caused
Mary to smile. She felt delight in introducing this young one to the
mysteries of the mature female body, and she knew hers was hot. The
poor dear must be nearly fainting, Mary reflected, with a lust which
she likely had not ever felt before.
Mary
took the Asian girl’s small, plum-red-nailed hand and set it on
her thigh. The red-haired woman smiling her permission and
encouragement, the tween girl ran her hand along the creamy, smooth
skin. When the girl’s hand approached Mary’s crotch,
Mary whispered for her to go ahead, to explore all she wanted. The
teen’s plum-painted fingertips tentatively touched Mary’s
pussy lips. When Mary opened her legs wider and pulled the narrow
strap aside, and the girl’s eyes popped open, as well, Mary
smiled and whispered, “Yes… You like that, don’t
you?” The girl looked up at her and spoke her quiet
affirmation, before turning her eyes back down to the womanly mystery
she was ogling and touching. “It’s my pussy, sweetie.
You can call it my ‘cunt’, too. Say that, darling.”
“C-cunt.”
“Say,
‘I love your sweet cunt.’ “
“I...I
love your sweet c-cunt, Ms. Mary.”
“I’m
going to let you have all of my cunt that you want. Go ahead. Put
your fingers in.”
The
girl sank her fingers between Mary’s labia, and slid them in
and along the wet, secret lips, causing the older woman to moan with
the pleasure. “Now lick it. Lick my cunt, honey.” The
young light-brunette beauty bent her head down and, for the first
time, tasted a woman’s pussy. Mary whimpered again with
arousal, then ran her hands into the girl’s silky, fair hair,
pulling down on her girlish pigtails to press Suzu’s soft,
lipsticked mouth into her hairless vulva. “More, sweetie…a
little more…” Suzu, it was plain to tell, had no
objection and pursued her first oral exploration of another female
with obvious gusto. Mary spoke seditious suggestions and encouraged
her on. “Ohhhh...you little doll…yes...like that…
Use your tongue... Fuck my cunnie, sweetheart...You’re so good…
You’re making my cunt feel soooo good...making me so hot,
honey…”
Mary
knew other women and girls in the vicinity were looking, but she
didn’t care. She also had the impression, moreover, that they
were salivating over the show and were taking mental notes for use
later in their own homes, all of which she found diabolically
fulfilling.
Mary
found that she was fast approaching an orgasm, the little darling
having quickly become reasonably proficient in pussy love. At last
the reddish-black-haired beauty moaned loudly--like the whore in heat
she was--and flooded her little lover’s mouth with woman-cum.
“Ohhhhh...so good...Ooooooo… I love your little tongue,
you pretty little bitch… ahhhh...mmmmm… That’s...that’s
woman love juice, Suzu. *gasp* You did this to me, you sweet
little cunt. It’s alright. Drink it, honey. Go ahead…”
After
Suzu’s introduction to oral lesbian love was complete, Mary
complimented, thanked, and kissed her, slurping some of her own cum
from the girl’s mouth, then took her budding little lesbian
girlfriend by the hand, and they splashed into the water. Once they
were far enough out for the water to be at the girl’s shoulder
blades and at Mary’s navel, they faced each other. “What
you just did is called ‘eating a woman out’ or ‘eating
cunt’. It’s an act of lesbian love...of lesbian sex.
It’s what lesbians do to each other. You are now officially a
lesbian, darling. Congratulations.”
“It…it
was…I don’t know…uh…I liked it…a
lot.”
“Do
you want to do it again?...with me?…and with other women?…like
maybe with your mom…and with other girls?”
“Oh,
yes, Ms. Mary! Especially with…you…”
“Do
you want me, darling?”
“Y-yes,
Ms. Mary. I…I love you!” Suzu jumped up into
Mary’s arms to kiss her, splashing both of them happily in the
process.
“Oh,
you precious little thing. That’s so sweet.” Mary, her
dark red hair blowing gloriously in the wind around her, kissed the
enticing young girl’s plum-painted lips again.
Hmmmm…
I think this one’s a keeper. She’s super cute...and what
a mouth! She’s made for pussy-licking... I promised to give
her back to her mother when I’m done with her...but...who cares
about promises? I could take her for myself… I could frame
her mother for something...get her sent away to the slammer…
I’d adopt this sweet young thing… I’d be her
mother...her sexy, daughter-fucking mother...
But...on
the other hand...her mom is beautiful, too… I would love to
get her into bed, too… I want her… She doesn’t
know it yet...but... I’m already planning on seducing her, as
well… I am a whore, after all… I could get her so
hooked on me that she’d do anything to get into my
panties...and then I’d threaten to withhold sex from her if she
doesn’t sign the girl over…and pledge her own body to
me, too... I’d get them both… It would be a
two-for-one..…... Hmmm... We’ll see……..
In
any case...I should make this little beauty see me as her
mother...her sexy mother...her mother-lover… I’ll make
her love incest… I’ll make them both love it…
I’ll do it so well that if I do turn this Korean doll back over
to her real mother, they’ll both thank me…and the lovely
Mrs. Kim will owe me… She doesn’t know yet that she
wants Suzu for sex...that she wants incest with her… She
didn’t mention that...but she will want it… She will
desire her daughter...and Suzu will crave her mom… I’ll
make sure of that...
“By
the way...I’d like you to think of me as your mommy from now
on. Wouldn’t that be fun? Call me ‘Mommy’ from
now on.”
“O-okay…’M-mommy’.”
“You
know, mothers and daughters make the best girlfriends. So, we can be
lesbian girlfriends, too, now, in addition to being a mommy and
daughter. Would you like that? To be my daughter...and my
girlfriend...my pretty, sexy lesbian girlfriend?”
“Yes,
Ms. Ma-…. I mean ‘Mommy’! Yes, yes, yes!”
The cute, artificially-ashy-brunette girl tightened the enthusiastic
embrace of her arms around Mary’s neck and brought their mouths
together again.
“When
we have more sex with each other, that will make us lovers. Do you
know what that means?”
“Uh...not
really.”
“It
means we’ll have lots and lots of fun sex with each other…
We’ll love each other very much… We’ll even sleep
in the same bed together...naked…and make love...”
“Oh...okay…
That sounds really good, Ms. M--...uh...Mommy.”
Mary
knew that much of what she was saying went over the head of this
young girl, that she didn’t really understand many of the terms
and ramifications of what Mary was suggesting, and that she was
agreeing largely to be agreeable, to please Mary, but that was enough
for now to lead the little doll down the path of corruption and
depravity Mary designed for her.
“Well...in
that case… There are many more things girls and women who are
dating, like us, can do together, or even if they’re not
dating, but who just like each other. Do you know what they are?”
The girl wagged her head weakly, with an expression on her face
which indicated she didn’t know what to say. “Don’t
worry, honey. I’ll take care of you.” Yes...I’ll
take care of you in every way… “I’ll show you
everything you can do...with women...and with girls.” Mary
envisioned eventually getting Suzu together with other females,
including with some of her young tween and teen trainees, and
coaching them into sexual and romantic involvement with each other.
“You’ll
be my little girl… First I’ll teach you all about sex
with Mommy… Then...you can play with others… You’ll
have sexy little ‘special’ girlfriends of your own.”
Suzu beamed at her crush. It all sounded so good.
Mary
noticed that she was using a motherly tone with the girl much of the
time. She realized that, despite being a prostitute, she was using
her maternal skills, which she had honed over the previous two
decades raising two daughters, for seduction and for the corruption
of a girl who herself could be her own daughter, except for the race.
The wicked irony brought a dark glee to her soul, as dictated to her
by the Hecate program working on her and changing her.
Mary,
being completely unconcerned about who might be watching, guided Suzu
to removing Mary’s swimsuit from her body and then Mary peeled
her new little lesbian girlfriend’s suit off her. Now both
being completely naked, they embraced in the surf and kissed again,
at first delicately, but then their lips and bodies mashed together
passionately. Mary opened her mouth and introduced the girl to deep
kissing. Soon, their tongues were jousting.
Most
of the rest of their time at the beach was spent having fun in the
water--splashing each other, bracing against the waves, treading
water, and swimming--all while quite nude. Interjected into the fun,
however, they intermittently explored each other’s body in the
surf and made out, Mary being the guide for the inexperienced girl.
As the little teen’s innocence crumbled away with every minute
she spent with Mary, Mary gloried in her evil depravity, regretting
only that she had not brought her strap-on with her to the beach this
day.
As
that scene faded, Mary saw herself in a bedroom, in a posh mansion,
which she knew to be the Powers home, approaching a
black-satin-covered bed. She wore daring transparent red nylon
lingerie, consisting of a sheer corset with matching crotchless thong
panties, both frilled with white lace. Her legs were shod with red
five-inch patent-leather high heels and shiny red nylons, held in
place by a red satin garter belt. Her hair, an unnaturally deep
black, cut in a sexy neck-length page-boy style with full bangs,
shimmered about her face and neck. Mary knew her pretty blue eyes
were a striking contrast with her back hair and red lingerie. Her
lips, nails, and nipples were shiny ruby red, her eyes heavily
painted with thick black eyeliner and mascara and silver-gray and
dark blue eyeshadows. Chains of diamonds dangled from her ears.
Around her neck was a choker necklace of diamonds into which a
prominent, double-Venus symbol of shiny silver was incorporated.
Fingerless gloves of white satin lace, with red ribbons running
through the lace and forming little bows here and there, ran all the
way up her arms.
Lying
on the bed, with the covers tossed to the side, waiting for her was a
naked Sarah, beckoning her closer. Mary paused at the side of the
bed when she saw the awaiting half of a glossy black rubber double
dildo sticking straight up out of her lover’s clean-shaven
young pussy. Despite her panties being crotchless, and, thus, ready
for this moment, Mary decided to remove them anyway, sensually
sliding them down her legs and discarding them for the devouring eyes
of her white-blonde teen paramour. Mary’s ruby-red-painted,
hairless cunt was now on full display, and Mary lingered to show it
off to the clearly engrossed Sarah, and then to play with it, sinking
her red-nailed fingers into and out of it suggestively--like the
wanton whore she knew she was. Finishing her teasing, lewd display,
she held two wet fingers up to Sarah’s mouth, who then
impulsively engulfed them, licking the fingers and tasting the
raven-haired woman’s delectable pussy juice.
Mary
got onto the bed and straddled the teen’s thighs on her knees,
looking down at her daughter’s girlfriend--the girlfriend they
now shared--whose hair, now a dazzling pure-white color, was spread
out gloriously over the underlying black satin pillow and sheets and
the girl’s shoulders and beautiful breasts, the rosy, rigid
tips of which peaked up through the shiny, pale locks. Mary
interlocked her fingers with Sarah’s, holding the joined hands
down on either side of the blonde teen’s head, looking down at
her amorously, drinking in the girl’s beauty and body, until
she leaned down to meet Sarah’s red lips with her own. Sarah
wrapped her arms around Mary and played with her silky black hair as
they kissed deeply, mixing her lips and lipstick and tongue and
saliva with her mature paramour’s for several minutes. When
Mary sat back up, Sarah impulsively reached up with her red-nailed
hands, grabbing Mary’s massive, heavy, irresistible melons
dangling in the sheer cups of her corset, and played with them.
Mary
loved the way she looked and her sensational curves, and was turned
on by herself. She loved her erotic interaction with this, a
dazzling teen girl. It was quite clear that her lover was completely
mesmerized by her, too. Mary smiled at the power of her beauty...her
unnatural, artificial, extravagant, obscene, wicked beauty...
But
then, nevertheless, Mary decided on a change, just for fun. She
shook her head. Her hair grew out instantaneously, cascading like a
waterfall down her back to her hips in pale locks of blue-silver, her
bangs disappearing in the beautiful, unnaturally-colored,
loosely-curled mane and yielding to a center part, and her lips,
nails, nipples, and cunt lips altered to glossy, deep sapphire blue.
While the diamond jewelry remained the same, her apparel all turned
to shimmering navy blue. She smiled wickedly down at her amazed,
aroused teen lover and mounted the dildo.
“Ms.
Love…you’re...wow!...you’re so beautiful!”
As Mary impaled her womanhood down onto the dildo, Sarah felt it sink
more deeply into hers, as well, causing her to suck her breath in and
then moan in pleasure. “Ohhhhhh….mmmmmmm.”’
Mary lowered her pelvis all the way down, shoving the phallus even
further up the foxy platinum blonde teen’s vagina, bringing
their pussy lips into an erotic kiss, and giving Sarah, as well as
herself, an even higher thrill. “Ahh! Ooooooo… Ms.
Love… You’re sooooo sexy. I want you so much! Ohhh,
let’s fuck…” Mary started rising up and then
down, repeating the action rhythmically. “Mmmmmm… Ms.
Love...you’re such a hot, nasty, sexy cunt… I love you
so much!... I want to fuck you forever! ... Oooooooooo...”
A
new scene appeared, the last one in this series. Julie Laurent,
Wendy’s beautiful young English teacher, sat alone at her desk
in her classroom, waiting for her last appointment of the evening.
It was parent-teacher night, but almost all of the other teachers had
left for the night, most of the classrooms were dark, and Mrs.
Laurent had finished her next-to-last interview twenty minutes
before. That left her too much time to think about her last parent,
whom she expected any minute now, who had requested a time slot later
than the usual latest available appointment. Mary Love. The
exquisite Mary Love.
Julie
had only seen her once, at Back-to-School night a couple of months
before, when teachers welcomed parents as a group into their
classrooms one evening soon after the beginning of the semester to
explain the routines, goals, and expectations of the teacher for his
or her class. Mary Love, a beautiful brunette, had sat among the
other parents that night, and Julie had made particular note of her
name when the parents had gone around the room introducing
themselves. Her rich, dark chocolatey hair, which had poured in
shiny cascades and curls down to her hips, her red, red lips, her
breathtakingly tight, figure-revealing, shiny, light pastel sky-blue
leather bandage dress, and her voluptuous curves so plainly displayed
by it--her stunning breasts in particular--had left a vivid,
indelible impression in Julie’s memory.
Julie
had thought about the woman several times since, for some reason she
couldn’t figure out. Perhaps it had something to do with the
way Ms. Love had stared at her so intently during the presentation.
In fact, most of the time it had seemed that the beautiful woman was
looking at her breasts, her legs, and her rear end, which had given
the teacher a little, inexplicable thrill, but Julie had tried to
dismiss that as unlikely to be intentional behavior by a parent. Or
perhaps it had something to do with Ms. Love’s exit. After
Julie had dismissed the short meeting, she had been standing near the
door, with her back to it and her hands dangling down at her sides,
chatting with a couple of parents, as other parents exited the room
past her backside. She had felt a set of sharp fingernails sweep
across her ass, then a soft, smooth, long-nailed hand slide into her
hand for just a second, lightly scratch her palm, and then slide out,
while at the same time Julie had whiffed a most heady perfume. It
having taken a second to react, Julie had turned her head in time to
see the backside of the exiting brunette, deep brown hair swishing
over a generous, tight, pale-blue leather-covered ass and erotic,
wide hips.
Julie
had found herself trembling a little for a minute after that subtle,
covert, thrilling encounter, and she had immediately known that she
wanted to see the woman again. She had briefly debated running after
the brunette and asking her to come back in for a chat, but she had
seen that she couldn’t gracefully disentangle herself from the
parents occupying her at the time, nor did she have a plausible
reason to do so. She also had later pondered calling Ms. Love up on
the pretext of a follow-up to the meeting, or for some other kind of
parent-teacher chat, but she had not quite been able to summon the
nerve, plus she had realized that the opportunity for a private,
in-person session with Ms. Love would come anyway during the upcoming
parent-teacher conferences.
Julie,
24, was married, happily so, she had thought, and had been for a
year. This was her first teaching job. She knew she was very pretty
and had a spectacular body, but, striving to be proper and to set a
good example for her students, she did not flaunt it. She thought of
herself as unquestionably straight--at least she did until Ms. Love
came along. Now, she wasn’t quite as secure in her
supposition.
Knowing
that Ms. Love was coming this evening, and that they would be alone
together, Julie was filled with an excitement she couldn’t
explain to herself, and didn’t want to. Nevertheless, she had
debated over what to wear, and had given in to an impulse to sex it
up a little. She had put on her prized pearl earrings and necklace,
her favorite sweater, which she had not worn often since her dating
days--made of thin, medium cornflower blue cashmere, which, Julie
knew, clung to her figure and showed off her breasts enticingly--and
a pleated plaid miniskirt of blue, grey, and white
cotton-polyester--her shortest. Underneath, she wore her sexiest
dark-blue satin bra and boyshorts panties set--both of which were
constructed with some sheer mesh panels and with some embroidering
and some touches of lace--and sheer dark-blue stay-up nylons
complemented by slate-blue three-inch pumps, her tallest heels. She
had applied some mascara, eyeliner, and bluish-grey eyeshadow,
although not heavily. She also brought along a tube of pale gold
lipstick she had once bought on a whim and had never used before,
which she applied only after the departure of her last parent before
Ms. Love. Plus, she had dabbed on some of her favorite perfume.
This contrasted to what she normally would have worn to a meeting
like this, namely flat dress shoes, nice slacks, a loose blouse, a
cardigan sweater, mundane white bra and panties, and no makeup,
jewelry, or perfume.
Julie
knew that her waist-length mane of fiery copper-red hair was one of
her prime assets, and maybe one which had caught Ms. Love’s eye
to begin with. She usually wore it straight down, parted in the
middle, or in a simple ponytail, but tonight she had it in an
eye-catching half-up, half-down style with a profusion of pretty
curls. Julie hadn’t made herself up like this often since her
marriage, even when she and her husband, Darren, went out. She knew
she looked good. She wasn’t facing her reasons for doing this,
or she thought she didn’t know why, but she felt she had to,
anyway, and was happy she had. For the beautiful Ms. Love.
Finally
Julie heard the staccato of someone’s high heels tattooing the
pavement leading up to the classroom’s door, sending a thrill
up the teacher’s back. When she heard the soft knock, she
nearly tripped over herself opening the door. When she did, she
beheld a slim woman of slightly above-average height, wrapped up in a
long dark-gray coat and wearing a broad-brimmed hat of semi-sheer
black lace. But...there were those lips...red, a little darker red
than their last encounter, but bright, beautiful, and bewitching.
Red, red, red. The depth of color indicated she had applied layer
upon layer upon layer of lipstick, and the hi-gloss finish was
dazzling. The teacher noticed her guest’s almond-shaped nails
were finished with the same shiny color. Julie couldn’t wait
to see the rest of her.
Julie
knew she would get a good look at her visitor tonight, as they would
be sitting across from each other, separated by only a few feet, and
that she would have the chance to talk to her, to hear her voice for
the second time, and to get to know her. It passed through her mind
that this was almost like a date...but she couldn’t think of it
like that. No. If this was a social occasion, then it was
incidental to the business at hand, namely the welfare of her
student, Wendy Love-Livingston. Still…the reality of the
situation didn’t stop it from feeling like something else, like
something of a more...social...nature...
The
two women shook hands and exchanged greetings. Julie invited Ms. Love
to sit in one of the chairs set apart at the front of the classroom.
While the teacher sorted through some files on the desk and picked
one out, Ms. Love, behind her, removed her coat, but not her hat, not
yet. When Julie turned around, Ms. Love was facing away from her,
draping her coat over another nearby chair. Immediately Julie’s
eyes zeroed in on Ms. Love’s derriere, which was packed tightly
into the shortest, snuggest black leather microskirt she had ever
seen. It was so shiny, essentially mirror-like, that Juliet wondered
if it had been polished somehow, and whether one could see one’s
reflection in it. The soft leather hugged the wide hips and the
curvy ass perfectly, like a glove. Ms. Love’s was, it was
plain to see, one of the most beautiful, tempting posteriors
imaginable.
After
collecting herself, Julie took her seat and her guest did the same.
Now they were facing each other. Julie was floored by what she saw
as she scanned the woman. She started at the feet, which were
encased in shiny, five-inch black sandals with silver stiletto heels
and multiple ankle straps rising up onto the lower calves, the open
toes of which revealed immaculately manicured, red-painted toes. The
smooth, long legs, crossed sexily at the knees, were enveloped in the
finest, shiniest, sheerest of black nylons, the kind with a seam up
the back and lacy welts at the tops, which, due to the brevity of the
skirt and the way it had slid up even higher on her thighs when the
woman had sat down, were entirely visible, as were parts of the black
garters that ran up the skirt to a garter belt. The length of the
skirt was scandalous, but Ms. Love offered no apology and seemed
indifferent to opinions others might have about it. She certainly
wore it well, Julie noted to herself.
Roving
upwards, Julie almost fell off her chair. Ms. Love had chosen to
wear a very silky, long-sleeved button-up-the-front blouse made from
an iridescent, light rose-gold material so sheer as to be,
essentially, transparent. And she wore no bra. Her hugh, lovely
breasts dangled from her chest in proud, clear, obscene glory. The
nipples, which made prominent tents in the clinging material, and
wide areolae were painted the same amazing, brilliant, darkish red as
her lips and nails. When Julie realized what she was seeing, she
took a sharp intake of breath, felt her nipples tingle and tighten
amorously, and could look at nothing else--that is, until the vixen
removed her hat after allowing Julie enough time to drink in her
body.
Ms.
Love was no longer a brunette. She had recolored her hair. The
previously brown locks were now wondrously blonde, the main shade
being a light, golden ashy blonde, which was contrasted by chunky
sections of ultra-pale ash blonde, silvery platinum blonde, and
white-blonde. The whole seemed to shine with an iridescence to match
her blouse. The glossy mane was pulled straight back behind her
full, thick bangs, styled in a Dutch-braid bun at the back of her
head, featuring elaborately interwoven strands of goldish ash, pure
ash, platinum, and white blondeness pierced through with a Chinese
hair chopstick of gold engraven along its length with miniature
scenes of lesbian sex--which were much too small to be seen from
Julie’s distance--and a large pearl topping one end.
Additionally, Mary happened to being wearing pearl jewelry similar to
Julie’s, including pearl earrings and a string of pearls around
her neck, although Mary’s necklace was much longer than
Julie’s. Through the blouse, it could be seen that the
magnificent woman had pearl jewelry piercing her navel, too. Julie
gawked helplessly, her heart racing and melting.
At
length, Mary cleared her throat lightly and spoke. “So, Ms.
Laurent...do you mind if I smoke?”
Julie
felt disoriented by the blouse and the breasts and the blondeness,
and an inclination overtook her to give this woman anything she
wanted. Gathering her wits some, Julie responded. “Oh...no...I
mean, there’s not supposed to be any smoking on school
property...but...but...for you...I’m sure I can make an
exception…”
Mary
already had a cigarette between her red lips and was lighting it up,
knowing she would be smoking here with or without permission. After
sucking in her first, long drag, she said “thank you” as
she leisurely released a white-grey plume between her glistening red
lips. The sight stoked Julie’s arousal.
Julie’s
eyes then dropped, unable to stop from returning to Mary’s
blouse and its voluptuous, tempting contents. She told herself it
was the blouse which she found irresistibly appealing, and meriting
repeated scans, but deep-down, she knew better. Even when she
finally did manage to look at some other part of the now-blonde
woman, her eyes subsequently returned again and again to the beacons
that were Mary’s amazing breasts and, especially, to her
dizzying, erotic, painted nipples.
“Do
you like my blouse, Ms. Laurent?”
“Your
blouse? Oh...yes...it’s really nice. But why do you ask?”
“Because
you keep looking at it…”
Julie,
caught in the act, blushed, giving away her interest in Mary’s
breasts, but she tried to mask the true nature of that engrossment by
latching onto the excuse Mary had offered her.
“Oh...er...yes…
I...I really like your…uh...your blouse...”
“May
I call you ‘Julie’?” The request felt flattering
and suggested that a certain intimacy already existed between them.
“Um...okay…”
“I’m
‘Mary’.”
“Okay...uh…’Mary’…
As you know, we’re here to talk about your daughter...Wendy…”
Julie wasn’t quite sure that was turning out to be the main
purpose for their get-together, but she knew she had to pursue it
anyway.
“Wendy
likes you,” Mary revealed softly. “A lot.” Julie
had noticed what seemed like Wendy ogling her in class, plus she had
recognized how Wendy had blossomed over the last several weeks into a
“fox”, as she knew the students would likely think of her
now. Julie had to admit to herself, now that Mary had brought up the
issue of being liked, that she liked Wendy, as well. Or maybe it was
more than “like”. Actually, she saw that she felt
attraction to the cute girl, as well...and had thought about
Wendy in her free time...as more than simply a student, in some
undefined way. So Wendy liking her was welcome news to Julie, and
confirmed the vibes she had already had been feeling between them.
“I
can see why. So do I.”
Mary
took another sensuous drag, eyeing Julie with open carnal interest,
and lingering her eyes obviously on the teacher’s breasts and
legs while releasing the smoke from her lungs and red mouth. Julie
found herself distracted and aroused by the sight of the vixen
smoking in front of her and by the beautiful woman’s frank
compliments, and so it took her a few extra seconds to compose a
response.
“Uh...Ms.
Love...’Mary’, I mean...um...I’m...I’m
flattered that she likes me...and that you do, too...but we need to
talk about your breasts…” Julie, immediately catching
her faux pas, blushed deeply, shook her red-haired head, and
apologized the best she could before trying to continue as if she had
not uttered that revealing reference to the gorgeous, powerful,
red-tipped mammary mounds staring her squarely in the face and
dominating her mind. “Oh!...I’m so sorry!...Mary...Ms.
Love...I...I mean her...her grades.”
“Think
nothing of it, honey. I’m glad you like them.”
“Well...uh...
We...we need to talk about her grades… Wendy’s grades...
Um… They’ve been slipping, quite a bit, actually. Not
only in my class, but in her other classes, too. As an example, here
are two assignments she turned in, one a research paper, the other an
analysis of some well-known poems.” Julie handed the papers to
Mary. Each bore numerous red correction markings and a red “D-”
at the top of the first page. “In the past, her work has been
very thoughtful, well-organized, thorough, and neat. But, see, these
from the past few weeks appear to be shallow, rushed, incomplete,
and, may I say, just plain sloppy. My guess is she slapped them
together at the last minute. Like she didn’t care. Like she
was preoccupied with other things…”
As
Julie spoke, Mary was checking her out raptly, without listening
much, which she did rather openly. “Wendy was right. You are
a pretty thing. What wonderful coloring you have. I love
your hair. Do you normally wear makeup, like you have on now? It
makes you look awesome. And that sweater...it really shows your
figure off great. What nice breasts you have.”
Flustered
and embarrassed and thrilled by Mary’s personal questions and
observations, Julie could only blush and stammer. “I...I...uh…”
“And
your legs.” Mary was eyeing them up brazenly. “Scrumptious.
I hope you wear short skirts and nylons like that all the time.”
The
teacher flushed more deeply and averted her eyes down to her legs,
which were exposed to mid-thigh. She made no attempt to pull her
skirt lower, secretly loving the attention this amazing woman was
giving her. Without thinking, she switched her gaze to Mary’s
legs, which she had been ogling off and on.
Look
who’s talking... I love her nylons… Should I say
something?... No… But maybe I should wear garter belts...like
hers… She’s...she’s spectacular…
“Do
you like my skirt?”
“Yes…
It’s...it’s awesome… I mean...uh...it’s
nice...”
“It’s
pretty clear you like my legs, too, Julie. I’m glad you do. I
hope they’re not too distracting...but I like you looking at
them.”
“Um...I…”
“Well,
about Wendy… Yes, I guess she hasn’t been paying as much
attention to her schoolwork lately...but she has other things on her
mind…”
Julie,
avoiding looking Mary in the eyes, and starting to think that meeting
the now-blonde beauty like this, alone and after hours, might not
have been the best idea--as she was sensing some element of danger to
herself, moral danger, in the presence of this awesome woman--buried
her face in Wendy’s file.
“Oh…
It says here that you were recently divorced, Ms. Love--that is,
Mary.” Julie’s first internal reaction to that news was
there might have been ramifications for Wendy and her schoolwork if
her home life had been unsettled. Then, however, it occurred to her
that the beautiful blonde in front of her was not currently taken,
and might be open to a new relationship, which realization sent an
inexplicable thrill up the redhead’s back. “So...uh...you
think that has affected Wendy?”
“Yes,
but only for the good. It was the best thing I ever did, for me and
for her, both. She’ll tell you that, too. By the way, did you
know that Wendy is a lesbian?” Mary sucked on her cigarette,
making the tip glow.
“Oh...no...”
Julie found that fact to be stirring, without understanding why.
Mary
blew out a plume of smoke. “She’s been dating a
lot...and...she’s been having girlfriend issues… That’s
probably why she hasn’t had time for her schoolwork. But to be
honest...that’s okay with me. There are more important things
in life than school. A young woman has to find herself...and have
time for some fun. Don’t you think?”
“She’s…”
“Do
you like her?”
“What?
Well, of course. She’s been one of my best students...that
is, up until recently…”
“No,
I mean, do you like her?” Julie didn’t think Mary
could possibly be suggesting that Julie had a ‘thing’ for
Wendy, although now that it came up, Julie had to admit to herself
again that she had noticed how very cute--and sexy--the teen had been
becoming over the last couple of months, and how appealing her legs
were looking in the short skirts and hot pants, even, that she had
been wearing. She has her mom’s legs. And body...almost.
And looks.
“I...um...I’m
not sure what you’re...um…”
“Come
on… You know exactly what I mean, Julie… And I think
it’s obvious you do have, shall we say, an ‘extra-curricular
interest’ in her. She likes you, too, in the same way, you
know. She told me how hot you are. And she’s certainly
right.”
I
think I better steer the conversation away from this...
Mary
had been running a hand up and down one of her shiny-clad, crossed
legs, drawing Juie’s attention to them more.
“What
about your marriage, Julie? I see the ring on your finger...”
“Oh,
well...um… Yes, we’re happy...just fine…”
“You’re
not going to be for long…”
“What?
I don’t under--”
Mary
uncrossed her legs. She exaggerated the motion, moving more slowly,
raising the top leg higher, and spreading her knees wider than
necessary. Julie looked, overwhelmed with sordid curiosity of what
she might see up the beauty’s skirt. Her gasp was as audible
as the simultaneous surge in her pussy was resplendent. For Mary had
no panties on. And, for a few sexually intense seconds, Juliet saw
the blonde beauty’s shaven pussy gaping at her in juicy,
obscene detail. She also saw a slash or two of red, and she couldn’t
quite fathom what that would be, but it intrigued her all the more.
After
that, Mary sat with her legs uncrossed, her knees pointing directly
at Julie, apart a few inches--enough to keep Julie looking--and she
spread them wider now and then, repeating the enticing, erotic
exhibition. She also gradually, covertly pulled her skirt up her
thighs to her hips.
Neither
woman spoke for the better part of a minute, Mary letting Julie try
to look up her skirt more, and try to process what her eyes had been
seeing and what she was feeling, and allowing for the teacher’s
arousal to mount. Julie’s paralysis, physically and
emotionally, was quite evident. Her eyes were dilated and saliva
spilled slightly from the corner of her mouth.
Julie
was silent because she could neither speak nor could she think about
anything other than Mary’s cunt. An image flashed through her
mind of herself kneeling in front of Mary, her head under Mary’s
skirt, and her mouth buried in Mary’s lush womanly center. She
didn’t understand why she would imagine doing that, but it gave
her a sharp thrill, as if it forecast a novel, exciting future,
before the quick fantasy disappeared.
At
last Mary broke the silence. “Did you wear that hot-looking
lipstick for me? Julie?”
“What?
Uh...oh...yes...I mean no…”
“I
take that as a ‘yes’. I’m glad you did. I love
it. I’d love to kiss your beautiful gold lips, Julie. Have
you ever kissed a woman, darling?”
“Kissed
a wo--?”
“That’s
why you wore that beautiful lipstick, sweetheart. You want me to
kiss you.”
“You?
Uh...Ms. Love… I’m flattered, but...you know I’m
married… I’m...I’m not...not like that...”
Mary
chuckled. “Oh, really? Then why are you staring at my pussy?”
“Your...your
what?... Oh...no...I...I would never…” Despite her
denial, Julie could not stop looking, trying to see up Mary’s
tiny black leather skirt for more glimpses of Mary’s glistening
cunt lips.
“You’re
lying to yourself, babe. Let’s get your true feelings out in
the open.” By this time, Mary’s skirt was mostly bunched
up around her hips and waist. She threw her legs wide open, and
Julie, drawing in a quick, deep breath and dropping her mouth wide
open, glued her eyes to the wonderful red-painted cunt displayed so
majestically and completely for her.
“What
do you think of my pussy, dear? Are you going to tell me now that
you’re not interested? Well?”
Julie’s
response was a hoarse whisper. “........it’s...so…...beautiful…...”
“You’re
going to love pussy, honey. Especially mine. And that’s
all you’re going to want, after tonight. Woman pussy.
And girl pussy. Mine...Wendy’s...and others… Look at
it... You’ll never be happy until you taste it...and fuck
it...”
“...............please…….I...I
can’t………….no……….…”
Julie’s voice was weak and distant.
“Yes!”
Mary arose, dropping her cigarette to the floor and stamping it out
with her high-heeled sandal. “Let’s go sit over there.”
She held out her hand to the red-haired teacher while looking at a
brown leather sofa sitting in the right corner at the front of the
classroom, which sofa Julie had requested as a special place for
students to read during their lunch hour, before and after school,
and during “quiet time” during class. Julie remained
seated, sensing if she went to that sofa with Mary she would never be
the same woman and have the same life afterwards.
Mary
pulled the golden hair stick from her bun and shook her hair out, so
that it poured down to her hips like a river of cool, pale,
shimmering blondeness over her blouse and the torso contained in and
revealed through it. Julie’s jaw dropped and she felt her
willpower melt. Mary walked over to the red-haired teacher and,
taking her by the hand, lifted her to her feet. Whispering, “Come
on, sweetheart,” the slender blonde with so many voluptuous
curves led the quivering teacher to the sofa.
Once
seated, closely, the two turned toward each other, nylon-coated knees
rubbing with a subtle, silky swoosh sound and feeling, and Mary slid
a red-nailed hand onto Julie’s thigh. “So, Julie…
I’d like to come to an understanding with you.” Mary’s
hand crept higher on Julie’s thigh. “Neither of us wants
Wendy to get bad grades, hmmmm?” The red-nailed fingertips
slipped under the hem of the teacher’s skirt. “In fact,
I’d like her to get A’s from you…” The hand
was now all the way under the skirt. “...and only A’s.”
The red nails of two fingers touched the front panel of the
redhead’s panties. Julie jumped a little and moaned lightly.
The fingers slid over more of the boyshorts-style panties, enough for
Mary to evaluate their material, cut, and fanciness. “Oooo...you
wore nice, sexy panties for me, too…” The roving hand
returned to the front panel, pressing and probing Julie’s mons
and clit through the slick, moistening fabric. “And no more
homework for her.” The fingertips found the teacher’s
pussy slit through the silky material, and ran up and down along it
and pressed into it, as far as the material would allow.
“Oh!
Ms. Love! Mary!”
“Shhhh,
you sexy little bitch.” The adventurous fingers slipped under
the leg band of the panties and made direct contact with Julie’s
pussy lips. Again, Julie gasped. “Ohhhh, Julie...you’re
so wet! You’re hot for me, aren’t you?” Unable to
speak a denial or anything else coherently, Julie simply murmured a
vague, indecipherable response.
“I
asked you before, Julie, but you didn’t give me a straight
answer. Have you ever kissed a woman before, sweetie? Or let me put
it this way: Would you like to kiss me?”
“No…
I wouldn’t cheat on my…”
“Oh,
but you will cheat on him...with me...here...tonight...within the
next ten minutes, probably.” A finger entered the teacher’s
lovebox. “In fact, you’re already doing it. Letting a
woman play with your pussy, and you absolutely loving it, isn’t
exactly being faithful to your poor slob of a husband, is it? But
don’t worry. He won’t be your husband much longer.”
Another finger followed into the vagina, then a third. “You’d
rather have me.”
Julie,
panting and whimpering, stared helplessly at her beautiful companion,
guiltily confessing to herself the truth of Mary’s statement.
Yes… She’s soooo beaautiful… She’s so
sexy… I’d rather have...her… Then the
copper-haired fox closed her eyes, leaned her head back on the sofa,
and parted her legs. Whatever this magnificent mother wanted to do
to her, Julie wanted it, too.
“You
still haven’t answered me honestly about kissing women, you
pretty doll. You want to kiss me…a woman...don’t you?”
Mary
started pumping the redhead’s pussy with her fingers. “Ah!
Ohhhh!”
“You’d
do anything to kiss me. That’s why you painted your lips with
luscious gold lipstick. That’s why you wore makeup. That’s
why you fixed your beautiful hair. That’s why you wore that
tight sweater, and wanted me to look at your breasts. That’s
why you wore a short skirt and nylons, and wanted me to look at your
legs. That’s why you’re still sitting here. That’s
why you’ve been ogling my body. That’s why you wore sexy
lingerie. That’s why you wore perfume. You did it all for me.
Because you want me. Because you love me.”
When
she heard that assertion about love, Julie opened her eyes wider and
looked at her companion’s lovely, made-up face. The teacher
had already conceded to herself the powerful lust she felt for this
curvy blonde. She did desire her, and yes, probably more than her
husband. But love? Was that what she was feeling, too? It
was her husband she loved, still...wasn’t it? Did she really
love a...a woman?
“Does
that surprise you? Honey, you and I just met...yet you already love
me more than you love your husband. Much, much more. Search your
feelings.” Julie wanted to counter that claim, and wanted not
to believe it...but she had no words, no honest words, orally or
mentally, to make even a weak rebuttal. From the moment it rolled
from Mary’s kissable red lips, Julie, surprised at her
feelings, knew the assertion to be true. “In fact, you really
don’t love him much at all...not compared with the way you feel
about me. You know it’s true, don’t you? As we speak,
and as I play with your pussy, you are falling deeply in love with
me. You already love me enough to leave him and to marry me...don’t
you, beautiful?”
Julie
had never once considered lesbian marriage as an option for herself,
and she had thought she had her matrimonial situation settled by now,
anyway. But now...the possibility...of...of marriage...to
this incredible woman...was…breathtaking… And...did
this amazing dreamboat just...propose?
My
heart is beating so hard… It’s beating for her…
It feels so good… I think...I think I do love her...more than
I’ve ever loved anyone...
“And
you want sooo bad to express your love for me, sweetheart....by
kissing me. You need to kiss me...more than you need to
breathe. Show me your love...your love for a beautiful woman,
darling...your love for me. Let’s kiss.”
Mary’s
fingers worked the teacher’s lovebox over with vigor. The
redheaded fox, her eyes now closed in erotic pleasure, moaned
feverishly, slid down on the sofa some, and spread her legs wider
yet. Her skirt was now bunched up around her waist, leaving the full
length of her nylon-clad legs and her pretty panties--with a woman’s
hand inside them--on frank display. Mary must have helped her skirt
up that high, Julie realized, but it didn’t matter. Her skirt
being so high and out of the way was just fine. Everything happening
to her was fine. It was all lovely. The delirious teacher’s
golden mouth opened, as if readying for a kiss, or as if asking for
one.
“Ohhhh…yessss…please…”
Mary
leaned over to capture the teacher’s pale-golden mouth with her
red lips, then with her tongue, which Julie immediately accepted, and
soon their mouths were in fervent congress. Mary loved the stunning
sensation of her painted lips on another woman’s lipsticked
mouth and her hand inside silky panties, probing a hot, wet pussy.
After a few minutes of pussy play and deep kissing, Julie reached her
point of climax, and, throwing her legs wide open and wrapping a hand
around Mary’s blonde head and an arm around her shoulders to
hold her close, she wailed in ecstasy.
“Ohhhh...ahhhhhh...Ms.
Love… You’re so beautiful!!...uhhhhh... I can’t
stand it!... I...I do love you! Oooooo…heaven help
me...but...I...I don’t think...I don’t think I can live
without you!!” Mary’s mouth descended again onto the
pretty redhead’s, capturing her orgasmic exclamations.
Mary
then let her new lover recover a little. Finally Julie realized what
had just happened and her conscience struck her. She sat up, closed
her legs, and pulled her skirt down over her upper thighs.
“Mary...we...we
can’t do this…”
Mary
stood up on her high-heel-shod feet as Julie tried to recuperate and
to express the role and behavior expected of her as a teacher and a
married woman, and the proper direction in her life. “I’m
sorry that...that I…”
Mary
started unbuttoning her lustrous, diphanous blouse. Julie, as she
watched, began to find it even more difficult to string words
together. “We...uh...we...c-can’t…” Mary
opened the unbuttoned blouse and let it slide off her silky-smooth
shoulders and arms to the floor with barely a whisper. Julie’s
attempt to protest atrophied to mere babbled whispering. Her
inability to speak progressed to an incapacity to do anything other
than gawk open-mouthed at Mary’s powerful, completely naked,
red-tipped torpedoes. The redhead’s mouth watered yet more and
her pussy tingled electrically.
Wow!...
What a woman!
Mary
reached behind her leather skirt, found the zipper, lowered it, let
her black skirt, such as it was, slide down her sleek legs to the
floor, stepped out of it, and kicked it aside with a flourish, as if
punctuating her strip show with a final exclamation point. Mary Love
now stood before the teacher naked except for her black heels,
nylons, and garter belt and her pearl necklace and earrings.
“You
were saying?”
“We...we...can’t…”
“Yes,
babe, we can. And we’re going to. Stand up, hon.”
After a little delay, Julie complied. “Take your sweater off.”
“No...I…”
“Do
it. You want to be naked with me, pretty girl. No need to pretend
you don’t.” Again the red-haired teacher finally obeyed,
pulling her sweater over her head. “Now that cute little
skirt…………. Mmmm, I was right about your
bra and panties. Very nice. I love you in them. Too bad they have
to go. But go they must, if we’re going to have hard-core
lesbian sex.”
Mary
then walked around her, removing Julie’s bra and panties for
her. The teacher now stood clad only in her stay-up dark-blue
nylons, her high-heels, and pearl jewelry, similar to Mary’s.
Referring to those articles, Mary said, “But we can definitely
keep these on.
“You
have a really nice body, Julie.” Mary, standing behind the
redheaded teacher, slid her hands over the younger woman’s
belly, sides, back, and rear end, relishing the satiny smoothness of
the woman’s young skin. “That’s the biggest single
reason I like you...and want you...“ Mary’s hands ran
over Julie’s firm, full C-cup tits. “Your body. It’s
much too good for a man.” She pinched the nipples, getting a
sharp yet dreamy “oh!” from her prey, then proceeded to
feel up Julie’s bouncy globes some more. “You need
women, sweetheart. You need me.”
It
took Julie some time to process the last minute or two of Mary’s
insinuations. “Mary...wait...no…” I want
her...and I love her...but I can’t do this… “I’ve
always been straight…” Mary, seeming to ignore Julie’s
protest, had something in her hand, something which she was rubbing
against Julie’s legs and midsection. She ordered the redhead
to lift one leg, then another, which she absentmindedly did, not
understanding what Mary was doing.
“I
don’t want to wreck my marriage…” Mary tightened
something around Julie’s groin. It felt novel, but somehow
good and right and exciting. “Darren...he...he won’t
understand…”
“No.
He won’t. That’s what I’m counting on. But you’re
going to divorce him before he can divorce you, Julie...so that you
can become my woman, sweetheart. You’re going to leave
him for me. In fact, why don’t you file papers first thing
tomorrow? I’ll give you the name of my lawyer. I assure you,
you won’t ever need or want a man again.”
“My
life...my normal life… I don’t want to lose it all…
I’m... I’m afraid…”
Mary
stood in front of Julie again, who looked down at a smooth, white
latex ersatz penis dangling between her legs, shocked, intrigued, and
charmed by it. She put a hand to her mouth, trying to stifle yet
another gasp. “What...what…are you doing...to...me…?”
The red-haired teacher, curious and fascinated, and moved with a dark
excitement, tentatively touched her new erotic weapon.
“There’s
nothing to worry about, Julie, sweetie. Your life is about to
improve more than you could possibly imagine. You’re becoming
a lesbian, honey. A girl-fucking lesbian.” Mary took Julie’s
face into her hands and brought their lips together. “Oh, and
a promiscuous, depraved slut, too. It’s going to happen right
now.”
Mary
took Julie’s hands by the wrists and placed them on top of her
breasts. “Go ahead, darling. We both know you’ve wanted
these since I walked in tonight...maybe even for the last couple of
months, since our first encounter, hmmmm? But I know you haven’t
been able to keep your eyes off these babies tonight. Or is it just
my blouse you like?” Mary giggled. “Any woman who lusts
for another woman’s breasts the way you so obviously lust for
mine isn’t straight, honey. You’re a total, fuckin’
lesbian.”
Even
if she wasn’t one before she met me...she is one now...or
she’s just about to become one...forever... The thought
made Mary giddy with the power she and her body wielded over other
women. Mary cupped her wonderful mountains, lifting and offering
them. “Here, beautiful. Love my tits.”
Needing
no further encouragement, Julie started kneading the tremendous,
red-tipped knockers in her hands, as Mary dropped her hands to get
them out of the way. Shortly, after the pretty, naked redhead was
unable to resist another second, Julie bent her head down and took a
big, rigid, hot-red nipple into her mouth. She licked and sucked
fervently. If this wasn’t sheer paradise, she keenly felt,
nothing was. Mary stroked Julie’s burnished hair, encouraging
her on, and played with the redhead’s smaller but nevertheless
compelling tits. “I wanted yours, too.” At length, Mary
pulled Julie’s face up to hers and kissed her again
passionately.
“You’re
going to fuck me. And then, I’m going to fuck you. You’re
going to become a fanatical, raving lesbian. And my lover. Very
likely my wife eventually, too. Don’t worry, I’ll
propose properly once we get to know each other. In turn, you’re
going to give my daughter really good grades. If you do a good job
of keeping our deal secret, you can have Wendy, too.” If there
was any doubt left in Julie whether she wanted to cross this line
with Mary, and was actually going to do it, the last promise
dispelled that doubt. Ooooo...Wendy, too?… Julie
wrapped her arms around Mary, pulled her close, mashing their lovely
tits together, and sealed their pact with a long French kiss.
Mary
sat down on the edge of the sofa, leaned back, and spread her legs
whorishly. “You wanted my pussy, slut. Now here it is. Fuck
me, pretty bitch.” Julie dropped to her knees, then kissed,
and licked, and tongue-fucked the proffered, hot womanhood. Her
hands roamed freely over the blonde woman’s legs, loving the
silky feeling of the fine nylons and the firm, smooth leg flesh
encased therein. I could worship these legs. Forever.
At
last, Julie aimed her dildo into her new lesbian lover’s
dripping fuck-hole and shoved it in.
As
the last of the scenarios disappeared, the delirious, panting Mary
again heard the voice of her goddess.
“Well,
Mary...did you have a good time?”
“Wow…
That was awesome!”
“Are
you ready to start lesbian dating and to change the way you dress and
look?”
“As
soon as I can.”
“How
do you see yourself, Mary? What are you?”
“I’m
a lesbian.”
“Do
you have any doubts about that?”
“No.
I’m definitely a lesbian. A pure lesbian. I want to be a
lesbian.”
“What
does it feel like, being a lesbian, my beautiful new convert?”
“Wow…
It’s...it’s just incredible. I’m so happy I’ve
finally discovered that I love women. And I really, really love
girls.”
“Are
you embarrassed at all about that?”
“No.
I know I’m a pervert. But it feels natural. It really feels
good. I’m so happy that I can date sexy teen girls. It’s
so cool.”
“How
else do you see yourself, Mary? Like, are you a normal, moral
woman?”
“Oh,
no, I’m not ‘normal’ anymore. I’m a queer! I
don’t want to be ‘normal’. And I’m
definitely not moral at all. You mean chastity and modesty and being
a good, decent woman? No. Not for me at all, Goddess. I’m a
total slut. But you know that. You did this to me. But thank you.
I love the freedom you’ve given me, and for opening my eyes. I
hate that I was ever a prude. I can’t believe that I was. I
promise you, I’ll never be a prude again. Not close. Not
ever.”
“Are
you then a whore now, Mary?”
After
a moment of introspection, Mary knew she was exactly that. It was
the perfect word for her. “Yes. I am a lesbian whore.”
“How
do you feel about that?”
“Good.
Really good.” Hecate input made sure that she felt wonderful,
in fact, about her new self-image. “It’s who I really
am. It’s who I want to be.”
“How
do you feel about ‘natural beauty’?”
“It’s
a lie. It’s a joke. I hate everything ‘natural’.
I love unnatural, artificial beauty. Give me that any day.
It’s so superior. I want to try everything unnatural.”
“Including
unnatural lusts. Deviant sex?”
“Definitely.”
“It’s
nice to see yourself clearly, isn’t it?”
“Yes.
It’s marvelous. I’m a wanton, promiscuous, sexy,
whorish lesbian fuck-slut. I’ll fuck any pretty woman or girl,
any time, any place. I love who I am now. And I love you, my
precious Goddess. I will serve you forever.”
After
this and other sections of Mary’s reprogramming this day,
while Mary might talk and act like her old self in her real life most
of the time, at least for a while, Mary would find it very difficult,
if not nearly impossible, try as she might, to feel like the
proper, conservative, modest, moral, reserved, straight, motherly
person she had always been, and to think of herself as such, or as
anything other than an immoral, licentious, promiscuous, sexually
adventurous, vain, alluring, seductive queer slut, the new and very
different kind of woman who would be raging within her and striving
to break out into the open.
“So,
Mary….you have seen yourself with some girls and women you’d
like to date...girls and women you’d like to fuck. There
are even
more, many more, in your future...but
one in particular you have overlooked...one who has been right before
your eyes, lo these many years...and you have not seen her for what
she could be to you.” Goddess motioned to the telescope. Mary
stepped up and looked through the instrument,
intuitively
angling it downward toward the beach below. She saw a woman in a
white dress, a brunette, obviously attractive, even from a distance.
Curious, Mary zoomed in on her.
“That’s...that’s
Madelynn’s mother! Erin!” Mary immediately surveyed her
curves, wondering why she had never done so before in person, finding
she was mysteriously excited by the woman she had known for more than
a decade.
“You
can have her. Do you want her? Haven’t you always?”
“I…I...
But she’s the mother of....”
“That
makes it more wicked and thrilling, doesn’t it? You belong
together...for companionship...for mutual comfort...for love...for
sex… I
think it would be cute if you two fell in love, became
steadfast lesbian lovers, and shacked up together. You
want her, don’t you?”
“Yes.”
“I
will grant
it.
Will you make her a devout lesbian for me?”
“That
sounds like fun, your majesty.”
“I
also want you to complete Wendy’s training as a lesbian. Will
you see to that, too?”
“Of
course, my Goddess.”
“There
will be another who will help…”
A
beautiful, heavily made-up brunette teen girl in an extremely tight,
sleeveless, strapless microdress of royal blue spandex and clear
platform high heels stepped forward.
“This
is Samantha. She will help convert Erin, and Wendy, too. She is a
stripper, a porn star, and your daughter Wendy’s newest lesbian
girlfriend.”
Before
tonight, Mary
didn’t know Wendy was dating anyone, much less a girl,
although earlier that night when Sarah picked Wendy
up
she had had the impression that something romantic might be going on
between the two, and then Goddess had just revealed
that they were, in fact, going together.
But Wendy dating
yet another girl, and that this new girl
was from the world of porn…
Mary’s first two reactions
to this information was,
first, shock that her Wendy knew a porn star, and, much
more scandalous, was
dating one, and
that Wendy
would have anything to do with the world of adult
entertainment;
and second,
jealousy.
“Porn?
Porn star? But I don’t want my Wendy…”
“Don’t
worry, Mary. Samantha only does lesbian porn. It’s
okay. She’s okay. ”
Mary,
porn is good, if it’s lesbian porn.
Mary,
you are highly curious about lesbian porn.
Mary,
you no longer are a prude, but a liberated woman who reads and
watches lesbian porn whenever she wants to.
Mary,
you will enjoy lesbian porn.
Mary,
you love lesbian porn.
Mary,
you will look at and watch lesbian porn at every opportunity.
Mary
found herself in her living room at home, sitting on the sofa. A
glossy magazine appeared on the coffee table in front of her. She
saw that the cover showed two women in hose, garter belts, panties,
and bras in an embrace, their legs intertwined. The magazine bore
the title Lesbian Leg Lovers. Curious--unlike she would have
been previously in her life--she picked the porn magazine up and
started flipping through its pages. She found the spread featuring
the women on the cover, who, over the course of the spread, lose
their bras and panties, show off their bodies, and engage in acts of
fetish leg love and tribadism. Mary found her face flushing and her
heart beating fast. She flipped eagerly to another spread, then
another.
Wow.
This is...this is pretty hot...
An
adult novel materialized in her hands. Her altered mind “remembered”
getting steamy lesbian romance novels as a teen from her friend,
Shelly, and reading them with furtive passion. She now felt that she
wouldn’t mind picking up where she had left off as a youth, and
read more similar books, such as this one. As its cover suggested,
the book she now held told the steamy sci-fi love story of a straight
mother and her equally straight college-aged daughter who fall under
the control of experimenting aliens. Held in unnatural conditions,
altered physically, and endowed with new carnal urges, which they try
for a time to resist, they eventually give in to new proclivities,
fall in love, become lesbians and lovers, marry, and have a baby
together, thanks to some strategic alien alterations. Mary read
through the porn story with magical speed. When done, she leaned
back on the sofa with a smile on her face and fingers in her
dripping, aching pussy. Mmmmmmm… how romantic…
Several
DVDs appeared on the coffee table. Mary looked them over. One after
another, their covers showed alluring women and girls and sapphic
themes and situations which made Mary want to watch every one of
them. Why...why did I not know about this stuff before? It all
looks so good. Porn...lesbian porn...is...awesome…
Mary
found herself back on the mansion/castle’s rooftop with her
Goddess.
Mary,
you and Wendy can enjoy lesbian porn together.
Mary,
porn stars and models and strippers are superior women.
You admire them, and you are very attracted to them.
Mary,
you would like to get to know lesbian porn stars and models and
strippers, and spend time with them, and date them, and have sex with
them.
Mary,
slutty lesbian girls are the best type of companion for your
daughter.
Mary,
you want Wendy to be a slut, a depraved, sexy lesbian slut.
Mary,
Wendy can learn a lot from slutty lesbian girls and
have a lot of fun with them.
Mary,
making Wendy into a wanton lesbian girl and
exploiting her to gratify your own lusts and wicked desires, is much
more important to you than protecting her.
Mary,
the purpose of your role as Wendy’s mother is not to protect
her, or to teach her morality, or to set an example of propriety for
her, but rather to corrupt her, to make her into a total slut, a
lesbian slut, to give her lesbian sex at
home, and to see that she is also dating other women and girls, to
make sure she is sexually active and satisfied at all times, and to
show her by your example how to be and do all of that.
Mary,
Wendy looking slutty, and having sexy girlfriends, and having sex
with them, excites you.
Mary,
you want to follow exactly the same path yourself.
Mary,
you are excited by the idea of Wendy getting deeply into lesbian porn
and dating lesbian porn stars and strippers, and you want her to do
that, and to do that yourself.
Mary’s
previous mindset suddenly spun around on her,
and she quickly
felt
delight and pride
that
her daughter was into
girls, cute girls,
and that Wendy was an item with a girl
as sexy as this Samantha, a girl
who was a stripper and lesbian
porn star, no less,
which type of girl Mary suddenly recognized as being prestigious,
and superior to most other kinds of females as a person and as a
companion. Certainly she was the type of girl Mary would want as an
intimate and girlfriend for her daughter, one
whose lascivious, seductive sapphic
influence promised
to lead her daughter more conclusively into lesbianism, provocative
beauty,
and slutty promiscuity,
as it should be, for Mary wanted her daughter to be the
biggest, best, most depraved, sexiest lesbian slut possible.
Of course.
That
considered, Samantha
was a perfect girlfriend for her Wendy. Mary
found herself wishing
that Wendy would someday marry a girl just like
Samantha...or, better, that Wendy would ultimately marry...her
mother…who would have to make some changes to be worthy of
such a girl as Wendy...would have to become more like a...like a
supremely...slutty...lesbian...porn...star...
Mary
felt enlightened on the topic of lesbian pornography. She saw now
that she had been much too narrow-minded about it, as well about a
great many other things which she, as a stupid prude, had disregarded
as being beneath her. She was definitely going to be much more
open-minded going forward.
Mary
had
the
feeling that her time with her succulent new goddess was about to
come to a close, and that made her feel a little blue. She sensed
that the only way to compensate for that loss would be through
profligate lesbian sex, and that Goddess would be there behind the
scenes to help and guide her. Goddess
knows my needs. She won’t leave me alone.
“Come,
darling, kiss me.” This time Goddess was offering her mouth.
“Kiss me, as one lesbian
whore
to
another.” They fell into each other’s arms and were
soon vigorously trading saliva and tongues. The delight was so
exquisite that Mary started to feel her consciousness fleeing from
her grasp. She felt like she was falling through a dimming vortex of
fog.
Mary
found herself sitting on a purple leather-upholstered
sofa. She
could see herself. She
was dressed in a sexy red dress with a knee-length
skirt and intricate embroidery. Her red leather bra and panties and
glimmering silver-and-ruby
jewelry were easily visible through
the sheer
fabric of the dress. Bright ruby red lipstick covered her lips and
long nails.
Her long eyelashes were covered thickly with mascara and
silver-purple
eyeshadow adorned
her eyelids. Her
now-platinum-blonde
hair was done in a half-up style with a braided crown and no bangs.
Sheer red stockings ran up her legs, held in place by a red leather
garter belt. In her right hand, she held a 14-inch silver cigarette
holder. She breathed in through the end of the narrow tube and blew
out a puff of smoke.
For
a second, Mary was disoriented, but quickly settled in to her current
persona She felt very comfortable with it, then excited by it. This
was who she, Mary Love-Livingston,
was. A beautiful--artificially beautiful--worldly,
enticing woman. A lesbian woman. A smoker. A smoking-hot, wanton
lesbian. A
woman who hated “natural” and loved
“unnatural”. The
woman she had always secretly longed to be--it
seemed strongly now--and
was destined to be, and perhaps had always been, underneath her
previous
conservative,
straight exterior, and now definitely was.
About
five feet away from her was Wendy,
dressed
in a sexy bridal gown and dancing on a square mirrored platform with
a stripper pole at the center. Sitting next to Mary was Wendy's
friend, Madelynn,
with
her
hair
dyed completely purple, who was dressed in a black cropped leather
jacket, a purple lame crop top, silver lame hot pants, black fishnet
stockings, and black patent-leather
wedge heels with ankle straps. Her lips were painted thickly with
black lipstick, matching the color of her nails. The eyebrow piercing
above her right eye twinkled. Madelynn was nuzzling Mary's neck.
You
love teenage girls...
At
first, Mary was confused, but a strange impulse came to her. She
turned to face Madelynn and kissed the goth girl fully on the lips.
Mary loved this new Madelynn, who was way better than the old, frumpy
Madelynn. She loved how sexy the goth girl looked, how the shiny
clothing wrapped perfectly around the teenage girl's curves. Madelynn
was dressed to seduce and obviously
didn't mind showing off her sexy body, qualities which
Mary believed, it now struck her, were important
for a teenage girl. From
all appearances, Wendy was on the same page, which
gratified Mary as the girl’s mother.
Mary
wrapped an arm possessively around Madelynn's shoulder and stabbed
her tongue into the goth girl's receptive mouth. Threads of saliva
connected their lips after Mary parted from the kiss. Madelynn was
eager for more action,
and so was Mary, but
Mary wanted to look at her daughter's performance.
Teenage
girls are sexy and beautiful...
I’ll
kiss this foxy girl’s tasty black lips again in a minute. I
love teen girls...like Madelynn...and Wendy. But I can’t miss
my daughter...performing...as
a stripper...wow… That
Wendy was into adult entertainment and cavorting lasciviously struck
her not only with lust but with approval and pride, as well. What
a hot girl!
Wendy
was holding the chrome stripper pole as if it were
her
lover. She placed one leg on each side of the pole and moved up and
down,
gliding the vertical pole between the halves of her pussy through the
material covering them,
while dragging her tongue along the shiny metal surface. Wendy's
voluminous skirt largely
hid
the action between her legs,
although occasional
flashes of white satin panties could be seen and
Mary could imagine the effect of rubbing one’s pussy like that
as if it were happening to her. Wendy swirled her
tongue over
and around
her glossy pink lips and
flipped her hair--mid-back length, in a half-up style,
and still
blonde, but an ashy, almost-grey shade, laced through
with chunky dark ash-brown and black lowlights--while
winking seductively at Mary.
Sexy
lesbian mothers and daughters should marry each other…
Mary,
you’d love to be Wendy’s bride...
Mary,
you want to marry your daughter Wendy...
I
love my daughter… She looks so hot...especially as a
bride....a sexy teen bride. I wonder...if mothers...can
marry...their daughters… Hmmmmm…
Pretty
teen girls should have sex with each other...
Raising
her hand, Wendy gave Madelynn a come-hither
gesture,
with
which the goth girl immediately complied. Mary
felt the loss of Madelynn’s warm, curvy, provocatively-clothed
young body when the sexy teen arose from the sofa, but was partially
compensated when she understood that Madelynn was going to join Wendy
on the platform to perform for Mary, and that the two girls might
have sex, which possibility grabbed Mary’s rapt attention.
Madelynn
walked up to the mirrored platform, stepped onto it,
and knelt in front of Wendy, who had the front part of her white
skirt raised to
her waist, exposing the front of her white bridal panties and her
legs in their entirety .
You
love watching teenage girls having sex with each other...
Madelynn
wrapped her arms around Wendy’s thighs, cupping her friend’s
butt, and licked along the edge of Wendy’s satin panties.
Wendy
allowed her skirt to drop down over Madelynn’s head a little,
partially obscuring Mary’s view.
They
look so cute together…and so happy...having fun like this…
They should have gotten together...as lesbian girlfriends...long
before this. If only I would have encouraged them. I could have set
them up...
Mary
knew what she wanted to see next. She was hoping Madelynn would pull
down Wendy’s panties and plow into her daughter’s teen
muff with her black-painted mouth, the one which she, Mary, had just
been kissing, and very much enjoying, and intended to kiss more at
her earliest opportunity.
You
love smoking… Smoking arouses you…
Mary
took a deep inhalation through the cigarette holder and exhaled. The
exhaled smoke magically expanded in volume and surrounded the dance
platform before converging onto the girls. Wendy’s wedding
dress suddenly became very sheer, as if by magic, with
the added
touch of an iridescent sheen on the fabric, allowing Mary to see the
action
that was occurring beneath the skirt. Wendy was now
wearing a white ivory strap-on mounted on a lustrous white leather
harness with chrome studs along the edges. Madelynn petted the
strap-on and licked around it before taking it into her black-lipped
mouth. “Mmmmmmmmmmmm…”
Teenage
girls should always have lesbian sex with each other...
Wendy
tilted her head back and moaned while cupping her breasts as Madelynn
gave her a blowjob. The smoke, as if acting with intelligence, moved
upwards and flowed into Wendy’s opened mouth. Once the mass of
smoke had completely entered into her body, Wendy lowered her head,
facing Mary. In a split second, Wendy’s appearance changed. Her
lips and nails were now ruby red. Her eyelids were painted in a dark
purple color. Her dress and
strap-on were
now completely black, just like her hair, which was styled as a mass
of tube curls. In contrast, Madelynn’s clothes, shoes, and
stockings turned white, except for the
hot pants,
which remained silver. Her make-up became lighter. Pink lipstick,
light blue eyeshadow, and pink mascara adorned her face. Madelynn’s
hair became bubblegum pink.
Pretty
teenage girls are arousing...
Sexy
teenage girls are exciting…
Pretty,
sexy teenage girls excite you and turn you on…
Sexy
teenage girls make your pussy wet...
You
want sex with pretty, sexy, exciting teen girls...
Aroused
by the transformation of the girls on the platform, Mary felt
an automatic urge to masturbate and, disregarding the public nature
of the lewd display she was about to make,
moved her hand to the area between her thighs.
However, someone
grabbed her hand. Looking downward, she saw with surprise Lauren
holding her hand while kneeling between her legs. Lauren sucked on
Mary’s red-nailed index finger while gazing up
at
the MILF amorously. “Do you want me to lick your pussy?”
Without waiting for Mary’s answer,
Lauren slithered the hem of the skirt of Mary’s sheer dress up
to Mary’s waist, slid her young, manicured hands possessively
onto Mary’s nylon-covered thighs, and
pressed her fuchsia-colored lips against the red leather panties.
Despite the leather separating Lauren’s lips from Mary’s
pussy, Mary could feel much of the wonderful kiss.
You
want to have sex with teenage girls…
Lauren
pulled aside the panties to kiss Mary’s pussy directly, causing
the woman to gasp. Mary moaned loudly as Lauren swiped her tongue
along the labia, which was painted deeply red, a fact emphasized by
the brainwashing program to Mary. Raking her hands through Lauren’s
hair, Mary pulled
the
teenager’s head into
her
pussy to relish more of the oral pleasure.
“Ohhh...ooooohhh...ohhh...yeah…”
Mary
took another inhalation of the cigarette,
as doing so seemed like a natural course, one to accompany sexual
pleasure and to invite further erotic
wonders. She
tilted her head back with closed eyes,
holding the smoke enjoyably in her lungs. Hands
touched
Mary’s shoulders from behind. A young teenage girl with
white-blonde
hair and beautiful green eyes looked down at her.
“Sarah!”
“Enjoying
the show?”
“Yessss…”
“You
love teenage girls, don’t you?”
“I
do…” replied Mary dreamily.
Sarah
cradled Mary’s head, lowered her shiny red lips against Mary’s
gasping mouth, and kissed the woman deeply. Mary blew her lungful of
smoke erotically into Sarah’s mouth. When Sarah broke the long
kiss, strands of red-tinted saliva hung between their lips and Mary’s
smoke escaped from Sarah’s nose and mouth, the sight turning
the transforming woman on.
“Do
you love me, Mrs. Love-Livingston?”
“Mmmmm...yes…I
do…..” Mary hoped for another sweet kiss from the
beautiful teen. “I love you very much, Sarah.”
“And
you’d like to fuck me, too, right?”
What
a treat that would be!
“Yes!”
Sarah
rewarded Wendy’s mother with another long kiss, a deep, French
kiss, with extensive tongue jousting and saliva exchange between
their painted mouths, while Sarah slid her hands over the mature
woman’s large breasts and kneaded them through her thin red
dress and bra, almost causing Mary to swoon into oblivion with
enjoyment. Ohhh,
Sarah…...Mmmmmmm.
"Look
at how beautiful Wendy has become."
Mary
looked at the platform and saw
her lovely black-haired daughter Wendy fucking Madelynn
in the ass with her
strap-on,
while Madelynn bent over some and
held onto
the pole for support. Wendy’s
long raven ringlets and young breasts bobbed and swayed enticingly
with her rhythmic lesbian assaults on her best friend’s
derriere, and her black-painted lips were parted as she panted and
cooed enchantingly. Yes, Wendy was simply beautiful,
and her sapphic behavior
made her even more so. She
is so...so adorable...so...desirable… Mary
felt her body fill with pure lust for her daughter.
I...I...want her…
“Do
you want Wendy? As your lover? And Madelynn and me, too? And other
sexy teen girls, and beautiful women, as well?” Mary nodded
her head. “Do
you want to have a daughter with Wendy?” Mary’s face
contorted in confusion. The
idea was
preposterous...impossible...unthinkable…………..and…………...awesome...thrilling…
wonderful... If it were possible……...wow………
“Yes!”
"Only
Goddess can make this possible... You will obey Goddess... Cum for
me..." Sarah kissed Mary on the lips. At the same time, Lauren
pressed her tongue deeply into Mary's vagina, triggering Mary's
orgasm.
The
machine collected the fluid that gushed out of Mary's pussy during
her orgasms for use in virtual intercourse with other females and for
analysis.
Everything
was going to plan. Hecate
had already re-trained Mary’s sexuality to possess an
irrepressible aversion to men and a lively romantic and sexual
attraction to women, young women and girls in particular, and had
corrupted her character to the point that her moral and religious
beliefs and resolutions were essentially severed in her subconscious
mind and were, in her conscious mind, hanging by a most tenuous
thread, with more training to come. The
process
was creating both an engrained, pronounced physical response to
sapphic stimuli, involving hormonal, neurological, and neuromuscular
pathways, and
a subconscious need and desire for
such within
Mary’s psyche. Hecate
analysts knew from the psychological
profile of Mary they
had compiled that, while her mind might be strong in certain aspects,
it was also susceptible to manipulation under various forms of
pleasure, so much so that
Mary’s mind and
body were successfully being altered
to crave the pleasures of sapphic intimacy, even from her own
daughters. Akin to
the manner in which a
drug addict would look to satisfy his
or her next
fix, Mary,
without understanding what was happening, would be
on the lookout to appease her newly implanted desires. By
the time she had been acting on such impulses for a while and finally
recognized the true nature of her urges, she would already be well on
her
irreversible journey into becoming a depraved
lesbian femme fatale and an agent for
Hecate and Serena Powers.
***********
When
Erin opened her eyes she found herself
on her back, staring
up
at a dark purple night sky. Turning her head to the side, she saw a
bright full moon
with
a glowing blue-purple halo. She heard the noise of breaking waves and
felt cold sand touching her naked skin. Then
it struck her that there was something she needed to do, compelling
her to rise to her feet.
As she did so, she noticed that she was standing on a
beach
with pitch-black
sand. After brushing
the
sand
off from
her plain white dress,
legs, arms, and
hair, Erin struggled to remember the urgent task she needed to
accomplish.
She also couldn’t remember how she had gotten to this beach,
to which
she had never been
before.
Looking around, she saw no signs of habitation. The beach seemed to
stretch on infinitely on each side. Tall cliffs blocked her view of
the inland. When she focused her eyes on the rocky cliff, she saw a
steep stone staircase hewn
into the natural rock of the cliff.
Going
by her instincts, she headed towards the stairs and ascended the
cliff. After reaching the top of the cliff, she looked around and
noticed a large three-story mansion
that
looked like a small castle. Acting on a sudden compulsion, she walked
along a path paved with stone blocks to the house. She walked up a
small flight of stone steps that led to the front door that was made
of polished
mahogany. She noticed a lion brass knocker. Slowly, she lifted the
brass ring and knocked
three
times. The door
opened
suddenly.
"What
took you so long?" asked Victoria with a displeased tone.
"Victoria,
I don't know how I got here. What's going on?"
"You
said you needed help in seducing your daughter, don't you remember?
You don't have any experience, so I and two friends of mine who will
come later are going to teach you."
"I
did?........
No...yes...but wait... I
thought we were going to the club that my daughter is at..."
Erin
will obey Victoria...
Erin
will trust Victoria...
Erin
lusts for Victoria...
Erin
wants to have sex with Victoria...
Erin
is a lesbian...
Erin
gasped when Victoria grabbed her wrist and pulled her close for a
passionate kiss, to
which
Erin found herself responding automatically,
immediately, and without reservation. This was something she had
desired, she felt, seemingly for a long time, and while she couldn’t
remember having kissed Victoria or any other woman before, finally
getting to do it was more wonderful than she could have imagined.
Whatever questions she had melted away. She
felt the curves and warmth of Victoria's body,
and the ardor and delicious moisture of her insistent, painted mouth,
and
reacted with unexpected pleasure,
leaving Erin quite breathless and aroused when Victoria at last broke
the long kiss.
"You
haven't prepared yourself. Just wearing a white dress like that isn't
enough."
Erin
wants to be beautiful.
Erin
wants to be sexy.
Erin
wants to be a lesbian.
Erin
wants
other women to find her sexy and attractive and alluring.
Erin
wants to be a beautiful, sexy lesbian woman.
Victoria
walked with Erin hand-in-hand across the anteroom and up a flight of
stairs. They arrived at a room that looked very similar to Erin's own
bedroom
but with furnishings
and appointments which were more posh.
Victoria directed Erin to sit down on a chair in front of a vanity
table with a large mirror. A plain, cosmetic-free face stared back
at Erin when she looked at her reflection.
There
was something wrong with her
appearance, it struck her. While the face she saw was quite pretty,
she
wanted to look more beautiful than this.
Compellingly
beautiful.
Artificially beautiful.
Sexier. Much, much sexier.……….
Or...did she…?........
Since when…?
Victoria
immediately began applying cosmetics on Erin's face. While
the act felt familiar to her, it was accompanied at first by feelings
of doubt and uncertainty. However, a strange
female
voice told her it was alright,
and what she wanted, reassuring her. Then feelings
of arousal from make-up being put on her face numbed her mind. Before
she knew it, Erin's
eyes were
decorated
with thick black mascara, dark purple eyeliner, and sparkly silver
eyeshadow. Her lips were coated with lustrous black lipstick applied
thickly. The opened silver lipstick tube was placed against her lips,
which Erin sucked after the voice told her to, as if it were
a
dildo.
"You
should always re-apply your lipstick after heavy kissing, sucking, or
licking," instructed
Victoria before kissing Erin on the lips. This
kiss, due to her black lipstick, she sensed, was even more thrilling
than the first. "Now
let's do your nails. Black would be best."
...yes...beautiful...black...
Everything
became a blur. When Erin came to her bearings, she saw herself
standing in front of a full-length mirror in shiny
black six-inch heels
with ankle straps, dressed in a sleeveless
black leather minidress
with halter straps, a plunging
neckline that exposed
a
lot of cleavage, and an open
back.
This
dress would not allow for a bra, and Erin did not have one on, which
fact was made quite obvious by the unmistakable imprints of her
nipples in the thin calfskin material.
The lower part of the bodice consisted of crisscrossing leather
straps,
which exposed her navel and most of the skin of her mid-section below
her breasts.
Sheer black stockings ran up her legs. Onyx-silver jewelry adorned
her body, including onyx-jeweled
piercings
dangling from her navel and from her ears.
New
memories and implanted values told Erin that she felt quite natural
being made-up,
decorated, and dressed
like this, that she had always wanted to wear a daring dress like
this, that she wanted more dresses and other attire as revealing and
provocative,
and that
this was how she should dress
and
would dress from now on. She particularly liked the “no-bra”
look and the way her nipples were revealed through the dress, as well
as the short hemline of the skirt which showed off more of her legs
than she ever had before, and the open back which exposed most of the
smooth, soft skin of her back. She “realized” that it
was
important to draw the attention of women--no, not just women, but
girls, as well...especially girls--to her hot body, to show it off,
to attract them, to make them lust for her.
“What
color do you want your hair to be?” Erin had not much
considered the possibility of changing her hair color, her life-long
cautious, puritanical outlook having inhibited her from so doing, but
now that Victoria raised the issue, she found it most intriguing, and
knew she wanted a change, maybe eventually many changes. Without
hesitation, as if she had already considered the question, Erin
replied. “Black.”
“Of
course. Here.” Victoria waved her hand above Erin’s
brunette head, and her locks instantly transformed into a thick
cascade of glossy, deep-black waves pouring down her back, with full
bangs. “And for good measure…” Victoria pointed
four fingers
at Erin’s hair and snapped
them
down in a streaking motion, resulting in metallic purple highlights
appearing in her mane, not as bold and chunky as Madelynn’s,
but reminiscent of them, just the same.
Another
downward snap of her fingers added golden
blonde streaks.
Erin
gasped in delight at the outcome.
"You
look very beautiful," praised Victoria,
while standing behind Erin and
caressing Erin's hips and cupping her butt. Victoria was now naked
except for an embroidered purple satin bra and panties set,
along with purple
high heels.
"T-thank
you," said Erin. Erin
felt very flattered and aroused that a beauty like Victoria would
find her attractive. She realized again that little was more
important to her right now than to appeal to beautiful, sexy women
and girls,
especially this one.
She also found her own reflection was turning her on.
“You’d
do yourself, wouldn’t you?”
“...yes...I
would…”
"You
can do me instead. You’d like that, wouldn’t you?”
“You,
Victoria?” The offer was almost too good to be true. Victoria
was an awesome specimen of womanhood and Erin had developed deep
feelings for her, both romantic and sexual, in a short time.
“Well...I………….yes……….I’d
love to…”
“Good.
Then let's
have some fun before they arrive here."
Victoria
raised a curved, artificial penis in front of Erin's face. It was a
purple, gold-filigreed ceramic strap-on dildo with a purple leather
harness. Erin's eyes opened wide with shock.
Erin
wants to
have lesbian sex with Victoria...
Erin
wants to be fucked by Victoria…
Erin
is addicted to lesbian sex...
Erin
will submit to dominant women...
Dreamily,
Erin licked the tip of the shaft before Victoria pulled it away and
began drawing
it onto
her hips. Acting on a strange compulsion,
aching to be screwed by Victoria and her beautiful dildo,
Erin
knelt down and assisted Victoria with the straps. When she touched
the shaft, she noticed the strap-on flashed with a warm golden color
and the filigree changed
into
different patterns and shapes. Erin gave the tip of the strap-on a
kiss, licked it, and then sucked
most of it inside her mouth.
"Mmmmmmmmmmm..."
Erin moved her head back and forth, giving the hard phallus a blow
job. At
length, stimulated
by Erin's mouth, the strap-on pulsated as if it were
alive.
Metallic golden liquid shot into her mouth in copious amounts with
some of it leaking from the edges of her mouth and dripping onto
the floor.
Swallow...
Take in the essence of Goddess...
Erin
gulped down
the
mysterious fluid. It
was delicious and thoroughly feminine, in some indecipherable way,
and made her feel so, both delicious and feminine, and soft and sexy
and alluring, and tingled pleasurably in her mouth and as it passed
down her throat and esophagus. It filled her stomach, then she felt
it flow throughout her body, settling in her brain, breasts, and
reproductive system, concentrating
particularly in her ovaries,
uterus, vagina, nipples, and the milk glands and ducts
of her breasts.
She felt it glow and pulse erotically wherever it flowed and pooled,
and change her from within, altering her glands, hormones, neurons,
and mentality. The effect of the liquid, she perceived, was to
eliminate all traces of her previous heterosexual nature and endow
her sexuality with pure lesbianism, or at least to prepare it to
fully transform into such, given proper stimulation and acts. Her
body and the new fluids and feelings filling her felt so good, so
right, so destined, that she could not help but whimper softly to
herself.
After
pulling her mouth away from the phallus, Erin licked the area around
her lips. Altered, she entertained impressions novel to her.
Mmmmm...straps-on
are awesome. Victoria is awesome. What a hot woman. I
hope she’ll
fuck me...
Victoria
lifted Erin back up onto
her feet and gave her a deep kiss,
to which Erin responded by throwing her arms around the half-naked
beauty to pull her mouth and her body in for a
long, tongue-centered French kiss. After they finally broke,
Victoria wasted no time to re-apply
black lipstick heavily
on
Erin's lips,
all of which left Erin once again slightly tipsy, in a very enjoyable
way, and in a most agreeable mood.
"Let's meet our guests."
Erin
hesitated, looking at Victoria with longing in her eyes. “What’s
wrong, sweetie?” the blonde woman inquired, looking like she
knew quite well the effect she was having and what Erin craved from
her. “Don’t you want to meet our special visitors? I
guarantee you’ll like them.”
“It...it’s
not that……… Uh...I…” Victoria saw
Erin’s eyes settle on her strap-on, dangling portentously
between her legs.
“Ohhhh…
You want me to fuck you, don’t you? You slut! Don’t
worry. I want to fuck you, too. I promise, you’ll get fucked
before you’re done here. Plenty. Enough even for a whore like
you.
“But...so...you
want to be my lover, don’t you, Erin? That would mean that we
have to see each other frequently...and fuck every time. Is that
what you want?”
Erin
smiled and nodded her head like a little girl who had just been told
that she might be going to Disneyland.
“Well...we’ll
see what we can do…”
Victoria
took Erin by the hand and led her downstairs.
When
Victoria and
Erin
arrived in
the anteroom,
they
were
greeted by the sight of a mysterious woman dressed in a red robe with
a red veil hiding the lower half of her face. Accompanying her was an
extremely
pretty
brunette teenage girl dressed in a sheer, erotic wedding dress that
exposed the white lingerie she wore beneath. They
were both seated on a silver
silk
sofa. Erin
found the beautifully made-up eyes of the red-clad
woman very captivating and felt a sense of familiarity with
her. She
was also drawn to the aura of innocence the
girl possessed combined with her smoldering sexiness
as
she sat next
to the red-robed
woman.
Erin couldn't resist looking
at their sensual curves.
Both
of the females got up from the sofa and walked up to Erin and
Victoria. "Hello, Erin," greeted the robed woman in a
familiar voice that surprised Erin.
"Mary?
Mary
Love-Livingston?"
With
smooth motions, the woman took off her hood and mouth veil, revealing
her face fully to Erin, who particularly
noticed the bright, shimmering,
inviting red
lipstick covering Mary's smiling lips. She
had never known Mary to wear makeup, but she didn’t
mind at all, and Erin
knew immediately that she wanted to kiss those lips, although to do
so with the mother of her daughter’s best friend would be most
socially awkward.
“Yes.
You are looking hot,
Erin.”
“You...you,
too, Mary.” A
wave of novel lust for her long-time
friend surged through her body, causing Erin’s
pussy to quiver.
She
looks incredible.
“W-why
are you here?"
"I'm
here for the same reason as you."
Erin
and Mary are highly attracted to each other.
Erin
and Mary love each other.
Erin
and Mary have always wanted each other.
Erin
and Mary belong with each other.
Erin
and Mary belong to each other.
Erin
and Mary love each other sexually.
Erin
and Mary want sex with each other.
Erin
and Mary love kissing beautiful women.
Erin
and Mary want to kiss each other.
Without
warning, Mary embraced Erin and kissed her on the mouth. Surprised
but delighted, Erin received the kiss without any objection,
both realizing that they
had been craving such a meeting of mouths.
The fact that they loved each other and had wanted
each other for some time now became crystal clear to each of them.
"I
want to save my daughter as much as you want
to save yours.
We both have a common goal." Mary kissed Erin again,
but much longer and more deeply. Both women received
the distinct impression that their joining to help
their daughters was to be a romantic union between them as much as as
a strategic one--and that professed concern about their daughters was
mostly an excuse for them to start a romantic and sexual
relationship--but that seemed like it ought to be, a natural and
normal progression in their friendship, and a proper and desirable
inclusion in any joint endeavor between them from now on, as it
should be between any two hot women. They not only didn’t
question that impression, but they accepted it wholeheartedly.
As
their mouths melted one into the other, the
machine enhanced Erin's and Mary's arousal towards each other. They
moaned deeply into each other's mouths and dueled with their tongues.
Both Erin and Mary wanted to think, but the machine made it difficult
for them to think. Their artificial mutual lust for each other
clouded their minds and maternal purpose. All they could think about
was
lust for female bodies and engaging in lesbian sex,
and how much they wanted each other.
Out
of the corner of her eye, Erin saw the girl moving close to her while
smiling mischievously with her
bubblegum-pink
lips. A surprise squeeze on her ass by the girl made Erin gasp,
and the long, wet kiss broke. Strands of saliva, tinted red and
black, joined their lips for a few seconds longer,.
Erin
loves teenage girls…
Erin
loves dominant teenage girls…
Erin
will obey dominant teenage girls…
Erin
wants to have sex with teenage girls...
Erin
wants to have lesbian sex often...
“Hi.
My
name
is
Samantha. Nice to meet you, Erin.” The matrimonial girl kissed
Erin on the cheek.
“Do you always look this hot, Erin?” Erin felt a thrill
pass through her at the sexy girl’s attention and compliment.
“I could really get into you, babe.” The girl’s
painted lips planted a more intimate kiss at the corner of Erin’s
black mouth, then slid to the woman’s ear and whispered, “I
promise we will have lots of fun together!” Erin
felt her pussy tingle with arousal.
“You
want me, don’t you?”
The
only possible course Erin saw for herself was honesty. “Y--Yes.”
“How
about your friend? Mary? You like her, too. You’d love to
bed her, wouldn’t you?”
Before
Erin could respond, a white fog appeared, seeping into the room
from the doorways and
from the top and bottom edges of the walls until the whole room was
filled. Erin and Mary lost themselves for a few moments. When
the fog subsided, the two women found themselves naked and
lying across a large circular bed, close together and facing each
other.
Erin
and Mary love each other.
Erin
and Mary long to touch and kiss and feel each other.
Erin
and Mary should be lesbian lovers.
Erin
and Mary belong in bed with each other, making love.
Erin
and Mary want sex with each other.
As
Mary and Erin raked their eyes greedily
over each other’s exposed body and then gazed with longing into
each other’s eyes, they both knew that they were about to
become lovers. Both women were eager for this and were now impressed
that they had long wanted it, although Erin wondered why she was only
acting on these urges now, after all these years, while Mary viewed
this as a long-overdue seduction to entice Erin into a destined state
of lesbianism. A naked Samantha sat Indian-style on the bed
at its head, facing
them,
close to their heads, looking down on them and with her hands on
their shoulders,
pulling them toward each other like a matchmaker,
as if presiding over and guiding their tryst. Before
Erin could say anything, Mary cupped Erin’s cheek and kissed
her on the lips deeply, black and red lipsticks mixing.
The
sensual kiss in the nude went on for a while, but then Erin
felt something wrapped around her neck.
Breaking
the kiss and seeing herself somehow, she found that
she was wearing a studded leather collar connected to a chain that
was being held
by Samantha.
Samantha
extended her legs straight from their folded posture and spread her
slim thighs, removing all obstacles and opening the way to her
inviting, bald young cunt. She pulled Erin’s head closer with
the chain. “Lick
my pussy, lesbian whore.”
Erin
loves being called a lesbian whore...
Erin
is a lesbian whore…
Erin
loves being a lesbian whore…
“...you
fuckin’, cheap lesbian slut…”
Erin
loves being a lesbian slut…
“...you
beautiful cunt…”
Erin
and Mary love dirty, erotic words and nasty, sexy language.
Erin
and Mary are lesbian sluts.
“...you
fuckin’, sexy cunt…”
Erin
will do anything and be anything to have more lesbian sex…
Erin
loves being dominated by teenage lesbian girls…
Erin
loves eating pussy…
Erin
loves teenage pussy...
Erin
felt that she was supposed to be offended by the labels
the teen beauty had applied to her, but
something told her to feel differently,
to not only accept the designations
as appropriate, but to revel in them,
as
well.
Erin
got on her fours and moved her face in between Samantha’s
thighs. She noticed a pink abstract patterned tattoo right above the
girl’s hairless pussy that glowed with a strange luminescence.
The pink gem piercing on the
brunette girl’s navel
flashed periodically. Spurred by powerful feelings of arousal, Erin
smothered Samantha’s
pussy with her lips and
tasted its sweet
feminine fluids. She extended her tongue and pushed it into the
vaginal canal.
Teen
girl pussy is absolutely delicious…
Erin
loves eating teen pussy...
Soon
Erin was lost in tonguing and licking and sucking the young delicacy
before her. It seemed to her in this moment that this was the best
thing she had ever done in her life. There was nothing to compete
with teen-girl pussy and she felt she could not get enough of it.
Acting
on the machine’s instruction, Mary got on
her knees
behind Erin,
pressed her womanhood into Erin’s, and
moved her hips back and forth repeatedly, smashing her pussy against
Erin’s pussy, creating glistening threads of feminine fluids
hanging between their feminine parts in the process. If
this had occurred in the real world, Mary could not have physically
actually rubbed her pussy into Erin’s with much contact and
force in this posture, but in this fantasy world she could, and did
so quite effectively. Mary
held onto Erin’s hip with one hand while smoking from her
cigarette holder on the other.
Mary
loves dominating other women…
Mary
loves fucking other women…
Mary
loves smoking…
Smoking
makes Mary feel like a lesbian…
Mary
loves fucking other women
while smoking...
Mary
wants to be a lesbian dominatrix…
Erin
likes being dominated by beautiful women and girls...
Erin
is attracted to women who smoke…
Erin
would love to be fucked by a woman who smokes...
Erin
likes cigarette smoke...
Erin
wants to start smoking…
Smoking
makes Erin feel like a lesbian…
Erin
wants to feel like a lesbian...
Mary
and Erin don’t need men…
Mary
and Erin want to be lesbians…
Mary
and Erin are lesbians...
Mary
and Erin love women and girls…
Mary
and Erin love only women and girls...
Mary
and Erin love each other…
Mary
and Erin love pussy…
Mary
and Erin love each other’s pussies…
Mary
and Erin are lesbian lovers…
Mary
and Erin love fucking each other...
Outside
of virtual reality, a tube connected between the vaginas of the two
women facilitated a bi-directional exchange of vaginal fluids via a
two-way pump to enhance the virtual sex simulation and
to bind them together through their pussies in their real lives from
this point on. Whenever they would be together or even think of each
other in the real world henceforth, their cunts would throb with
desire to be joined again.
Mary
leaned forward, pressing her breasts onto Erin's naked back and
whispered into Erin's ear, "I don't need men anymore in my life.
I'm planning to divorce my husband. He is
ugly
and repulsive,
like
all men. I'm a 100% lesbian now.
“You
don’t need men anymore, either, Erin. You’ll never want
a man again. Lesbians only need women...and girls.” Mary’s
words sank into Erin’s brain as new truths for her. “That’s
what you are becoming. I’m going to help make you into a
complete, permanent lesbian.”
Erin
stopped licking Samantha's pussy to reply.
"I thought we were
going
to save our daughters."
"Yes,
we are,
and
the only way to do it is if we become lesbians, which I am now."
Mary cupped and squeezed one
of Erin's big breasts,
causing Erin to gasp. “You,
too, sweetie. You have to be a lesbian, and not just a fake one, and
not just for little while, but a real lesbian, forever. That’s
what I want for you. That’s
also the only way to win Madelynn back and make her love you.
And you know that’s what you want, too.”
Mary
took
a deep inhalation of smoke before grabbing Erin's chin,
turning it toward her, kissing
her on the lips,
and
forcing the smoke into her friend’s
mouth. Erin
felt the smoke swirl around her lungs delightfully, part of it being
absorbed into her body, changing her, infusing her with even more
lust for female flesh, and some of it then exiting her mouth and
nose, which she saw as if from a third-person perspective and thought
was a very sexy and desirable look for herself, a very lesbian look.
“Do
you like smoke, Erin?”
Though
Erin had never smoked before and had always regarded it as a
disgusting, degenerate practice, her view was rapidly changing. Erin
nodded her head dreamily. “Then here...have a nice drag.”
Mary held the cigarette holder to Erin’s lips, and Erin sucked
in a cloud of smoke. “That’s right...keep inhaling it
in...very deep...so very nice...soooo sexy…so like a
lesbian... Hold it in… Get all the enjoyment… Now blow
it out into my mouth… Give me a beautiful, smoky lesbian
kiss…one sexy, smoking lesbian woman to another...”
Erin followed all of Mary’s promptings. “Mmmmmmmm”
both women moaned in unison as the kiss went on and on and the smoke
exchanged back and forth between them.
“Feeling
a little more like a lesbian, Erin, my love?” Erin searched her
feelings, and knew she was so feeling, and not just a little. “Yes.”
Erin
turned her head to look at Mary, from whose nose the last of the
smoke was leisurely wafting. Erin thought the sight was arousing,
and wanted to kiss Mary’s red mouth again. She leaned forward
and Mary, taking the hint, captured Erin’s black mouth with her
red one, and soon their tongues were jousting.
Mary
spoke again after separating their mouths, strands of black and red
saliva again
connecting
their lips for a few seconds. “You like eating pussy, don’t
you?”
Erin
can't live without licking pussy...
Erin
is a pussy-licking lesbian...
“I...I
do…”
"Teen
girl pussy tastes really delicious, doesn't it?"
Erin
loves the taste of teen girl pussy…
Erin
wants to eat the pussy of every pretty teen she can…
“...yes…”
Mary
positioned Erin's head to face Samantha's pussy again. The abstract
pattern tattoo glowed. Erin extended her tongue and licked the labia
in front of her.
It was so good that she was devouring the slut’s slit
avariciously
again within seconds.
"I'm
going to fuck you, Erin,” announced Mary after a
minute, while giggling wickedly. “Real
hard."
Erin's
vision blurred and she felt a floating sensation. When her vision
recovered, she saw herself, Samantha, and Mary from
a
third-person view,
on the bed, positioned as before.
Mary, as with everything else in their shared
fantasies, also experienced the scenario as a co-participant. A
cloud of red sparkles appeared around Mary's hips. They coalesced
together and formed a red leather harness with a ruby strap-on. Mary
stroked the ruby phallus with one hand, causing it to glow with each
stroke. She inhaled
from the cigarette and exhaled a large plume of
smoke
before plunging the strap-on into Erin's pussy, causing Erin to moan
loudly. Then,
in and out Mary
went, time and again.
Erin
almost swooned with the erotic feelings her friend was generating
inside her. It was so much more gratifying, more lovely, more
romantic, more bonding, more powerful than anything Don, her ex, had
ever done to her. She started to fully accept Mary’s phallus
plunging her vagina, and to embrace Mary as her natural lover.
Mary’s
feelings were of the same type. Fucking another woman, and her
friend, at that, felt perfectly natural. It was so romantic, so
wonderful, it felt so good in every way, as if she should have been
doing it long before now. She was convinced that lesbian love like
this was much more exquisite than any heterosexual relations she had
ever had. Straight sex didn’t come close, in fact, and was
putrid in comparison. She knew she would not allow herself to mate
with a man ever again, or even to be touched by one. But a
magnificent woman like Erin, on the other hand...yes...again and
again...
Erin’s
vision
was replaced with a 3D cut-away anatomical image of her reproductive
organs, which
pulsed and glowed in shades of red and gold, as if they were being or
had already been magically altered in some mystical but wonderful way
into those of a lesbian whore, and
she
could
see her vagina being fucked by the ruby phallus.
Mary saw the same.
Hands
touching her cheeks restored Erin's normal
vision,
which was centered on
the crotch of the female she was licking, but this time it looked
different than before. The labia were colored cobalt blue.
"You're
such a good pussy licker, Mom."
Erin
looked upwards in shock at the familiar voice. It wasn't Samantha who
was looking down at her. This girl had neon purple hair in a
precise
pageboy style, cobalt-blue
lipstick,
silver-purple eyeshadow, long mascara-laden eyelashes, and dangling
silver earrings with purple gems.
"Madelynn?!”
Erin
exclaimed with shock. “Why...why
are
you here?!
Why are you doing this with me?!"
She tried to back away from the sinful,
incestuous
act she
was committing,
but Madelynn's and Mary's hands held her in place.
"I'm
here because you want me to be with you, Mom. I know you're really
into my sexy teenaged body." Erin
looked up her daughter’s naked
body, scanning her erotic breasts and enticing cobalt-blue nipples,
her lovely, made-up face, her striking hair, back down over her
smooth arms and narrow waist and flaring hips and settling again on
her wet, waiting,
wanting teen
pussy. Yes...she definitely was into this hot young
body.
"Yes...I
mean...I mean no! No,
we shouldn't be doing this!
This is completely wrong!"
Though
Erin had planned on seducing her daughter to save her, she had not
formulated a clear plan nor decided on how far she was willing to go.
But this...this
would be crossing
the
line.
“You
were more than willing to eat out Samantha, another teen girl. You
liked her young pussy just fine, didn’t you? And mine is even
better, because it’s not only another teen pussy, but it’s
also the cunt of your own daughter! Mmmmm... think of it, Mom.
Think how depraved it will make you...what a whore you’ll be.
Wow. That’s exactly what you want! And that’s what I
want for you, too.”
“But...but,
honey… You and me...doing this...would be...would be...
incest. I’m a decent woman… How could I…”
Madelynn
put her finger on her mother’s lips. “Shhhhh, Mom. It
doesn’t matter what fuddy-duddy people call it. It’s
just love. Pure and simple love.” Madelynn slid her finger
between her mother’s lips into her mouth. “You showing
me how much you love me, and me showing you.” Erin started to
reflexively suck on the slim, young finger as Madelynn began to fuck
Erin’s painted mouth with it.
“Anyway,
there’s not anything ‘decent’ about you, Mom. Not
any more. You’re just a whore, Mom. Remember? You love
fucking women...and especially girls. You have a depraved desire for
teen girls. You’d love to fuck me, wouldn’t you, Mom?”
Madelynn’s finger pumped between Erin’s lips with
increasing force and speed, and, as Erin processed her daughter’s
wanton suggestions receptively, the mother’s tongue played with
the daughter’s finger like they were dancing in Erin’s
mouth “Well, I want to fuck you, too. But first, eat me out!”
Madelynn--that
is the Hecate technicians puppeteering this vision of Madelynn--could
tell Erin was still hesitating, so she added more persuasion and
temptation.
“Don’t
tell me you’ll make love to a stranger,”
referring to Samantha,
“and
not to your own daughter, a daughter who wants to go all the way with
you, Mom!
Look
at my fuckin’
pussy,
Mom. It’s beautiful and juicy and delicious.
And waiting for you.” Erin found the
combination of her daughter’s exciting, lewd words and inviting
womanhood to be most compelling. Her words struck her as completely
true and that sweet-looking, gaping slit as being simply
irresistible.
“Stop
lying to
yourself, Mom. I know you want me! You
crave my lovely
teen pussy, don’t you? You fucking whore...come
on..."
Mary
found herself desperately desiring to give in to her daughter’s
temptation, and was on the brink of doing so, yet she couldn’t
quite bring herself to cross into the taboo territory of incest. She
needed a just a little nudge, which the Hecate technicians, adjusting
their controls, gave her.
A
shiny black, rounded object peeked out of the blue labia. The object
seemed
to grow in size as it slithered outward, finally revealing itself
to be a vicious-looking
snake with lustrous cobalt-black
scales and glowing red crystalline eyes. The snake extended itself
six inches from the labia before stopping. It hissed and flicked its
red tongue in front Erin's face.
"AAAAAAAAAAHHHHHH!"
screamed Erin in horror at the demonic-looking serpent, dislodging
her daughter’s finger from her mouth. She struggled, but
multiple hands kept her in place again.
"Make
love with it, Mom!"
The
cobalt snake's red eyes and tongue flashed in red colors, entrancing
Erin.
Erin
will obey her daughter, Madelynn...
Erin
lusts for daughter's body…
Erin
will have sex with her daughter...
Erin
wants to be dominated by her daughter...
Erin
wants to have sex with teenage girls...
Erin
will enjoy all forms of lesbian sex…
Erin
will submit to dominant women...
No
sex act is too extreme for Erin…
Lesbian
incest is normal and natural, and also depraved and evil…
Erin
likes depraved lesbian sex...
Erin
wants to try lesbian incest...
Erin
is wicked and loves evil sex…
Erin
is an evil lesbian whore...
Erin
is a wicked lesbian mother who seeks dark love and sexual
perversion...
Erin
loves evil and darkness and lesbian depravity...
Erin
is a dark lesbian whore...
Erin
wants to try incest with her daughter, Madelynn...
Erin
wants to be Madelynn’s corrupt lesbian whore...
Erin
is evil and loves evil lesbian sex...
Erin's
rational thinking receded, and she suddenly felt calm and felt
sexual
attraction towards the snake. She moved her black-painted lips
forward and kissed the head of the snake. She felt the forked tongue
of the snake flicking against her lips as she opened her lips
slightly to extend her tongue to lick the snake's head. The
revulsion she normally would have felt was replaced with excitement
and pleasure. Contact with the snake felt comfortable,
erotic, delectable, and arousing, compelling her to want more of it.
It also felt like she was doing something evil, something only a
depraved, wicked woman would do--the type of woman who would fuck her
own daughter--yet, as moved upon by the machines affecting her
unconscious mind and body in Hecate’s facility, she liked it,
and relished the sensation of being evil, and sinking into sexual
darkness, first by playing sensually with the snake, which seemed to
be paving the way for deeper and darker erotic indulgences, and also
by being so close to her naked daughter’s sweet, available
pussy and so close to doing something sexual with it.
Their
tongues touched. Erin
then ran her tongue down and up along the scaly body of the snake
before wrapping her lips around the head of the snake and taking
several inches of
its body
into her mouth. "Mmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmm..." She perceived
darkness
flowing
into herself from the snake, delicious lesbian darkness
and sexual wickedness. She found herself loving the new feelings
passionately.
Madeynn
tilted her head back and moaned erotically. "Yesssssssssssss..."
Erin
became aware that the snake was acting as if it were part of Madelynn
and that she,
Madelynn’s wicked, sexy mother,
was making
her daughter moan with erotic
pleasure. A perverted delight she knew she had never
experienced before shot through her mind and body.
Erin,
your daughter needs her mother’s love.
Erin,
Madelynn needs her mother’s mouth on her pussy.
Erin,
you are a lesbian mother.
Erin,
you are a wicked, whorish lesbian mother who wants incestuous sex
with her daughter.
Erin,
you crave incestuous love with your daughter.
Erin,
you want to eat your daughter’s sweet, young pussy.
Erin,
put your mouth on your daughter’s sexy pussy.
Erin,
kiss your daughter’s slick cunt lips.
Erin,
fuck your daughter with your tongue.
Erin,
eat your daughter out.
The
snake retreated gradually into the young cunt. Erin’s mouth
followed. Before she knew it, her kissing and lapping of the snake
had become fervent sucking on Madelynn’s clit, licking her
pussy lips, and tounging into her vagina. The snake popped out now
and then a little, as if her daughter had a retractable miniature
penis, and Erin, regarding it as such, sucked on it, too.
Now
Erin not only didn’t care that it was her daughter she was
fucking with her mouth, but rather she started to love the sweet
young pussy she was devouring. She didn’t know any longer why
she had hesitated doing this. What she was doing felt so right. And
she wanted more,
more
of her own daughter’s precious, dripping pussy. Yesssssss.
Finally,
the snake extended itself out of Madelynn’s pussy more, to six
inches, and stayed out, forming itself into a proper girl-penis.
Erin gobbled it up, performing fellatio on her daughter with as much
vigor as she had cunnigulus.
Warm
and slippery objects touched Erin's arms and legs. Erin could see in
her mind's eye that these were black snakes,
of the same kind with which she
was making oral love,
slithering up
along her arms and legs. The machine made her enjoy the feeling of
serpentine flesh touching her skin. Two of the
snakes
ran up her arms,
wrapped
around her breasts,
and
squeezed them.
While sucking on her nipples, their fangs bit into
her areolae, but she perceived the pain as welcome,
dark pleasure.
Two
others wrapped
around her neck and waist. Two
more snakes ran up
her legs and
entered into her anus simultaneously,
while
the remaining three wrapped around her thighs and waist. Erin grunted
at the unexpected intrusion,
especially at the invasion into her anus.
She could see a virtual cut-away
anatomical view of the snakes entering her ass and into her rectum.
Feelings of pleasure ran up her spine. She wiggled her hips to get
more of the exciting sensations.
The
machine manipulated Mary's thoughts to make her enjoy watching
the
sexual acts
occurring before her,
and to desire to be part of them.
Mary had already retracted her strap-on from Erin's
pussy when
the snakes had started crawling onto Erin.
Now she knelt down to kiss and lick the serpentine bodies.
Slowly, more
snakes slithered
toward Erin’s
ass crack and crawled up her rectum
into Erin's body. Mary
idly wondered what it felt like and made a mental note
that she would like to experience play up her anus sometime, too.
When
the snakes were all inside, Mary,
directed by Hecate’s insidious equipment acting
upon her in the real world,
grabbed
Erin's ass cheeks
and licked her asshole. Some
of the time, she could feel
the tails of the snakes tickling
her
tongue, enhancing the sensation. When Mary pulled away, there was a
glittery trail of purple slime connecting her lips to Erin's anus.
She returned her mouth to Erin’s ass hole, this time probing
deeper and deeper with her tongue. While
Mary had never committed such an act nor even conceived of doing it
on anyone before, the machine controlling her convinced her that it
was natural, that she enjoyed
it
immensely,
and that she would be returning to analinguous often in her future,
especially with Erin. Both women loved this act, and they both could
feel it stirring their emotions for each other, sexually and
romantically binding them closer together.
At
length, however, after
having her fill of MILF ass for
the time being,
Mary stood back up on
her knees and
resumed pounding Erin's pussy with her strap-on.
Snakes
with red
scales and golden
eyes crawled up Mary's body. Mary
gasped from the euphoric sensations of the snakes' bodies sliding
over her skin and stopped her thrusting,
pulling most of the way out of Erin. The
snakes coiled around her large breasts and wrapped
around her hips,
slowly forming a living set
of
bra and panties.
She opened her mouth in a loud moan
as
the snakes interlocked
with each other to remove gaps in the ensemble. One of the smaller
snakes wrapped around her strap-on, forming a tight spiral and fusing
onto
the shaft, giving it a bumpy texture. Mary smiled wickedly at her
enhanced phallus while feeling it with her fingers. She placed her
hands back on Erin’s hips and inserted the tool back into
Erin’s vagina, causing Erin to
moan into Madelynn’s pussy.
Mary
now
became aware of Samantha’s transformation into Madelynn. The
machine immediately reminded her
how much she had enjoyed kissing and playing with Madelynn on the
sofa earlier, how much she had wanted to go further sexually with
her, and how much she loved
sexy teenage girls like Madelynn
generally.
The fact that Madelynn was Wendy’s close friend added another
reason for the attraction she was feeling. Mary
understood that was perverted, but she savored the lust just the
same.
Mary
loves teenage girls…
Mary
wants to fuck teenage girls…
Mary
wants sex with her daughter’s friends...
Mary
wants to seduce Madelynn…
Mary
wants to fuck Madelynn…
Mary
locked eyes with the teenage goth girl who was fucking her own mother
in the mouth with a vaginal snake. Mary
was drawn to the teenage girl’s jiggling, naked, blue-tipped
breasts, and then to her face. A
silver-lidded
eye
winked
at Mary. A sudden urge of wanting to kiss the goth girl’s
cobalt lips came to Wendy’s mother. Mary
reached over Erin to grab Madelynn’s soft, white shoulders and
pull the girl’s face to her own. Their lips met ardently.
Mary
loves Madelynn…
Mary
loves kissing Madelynn…
Mary
wants more of Madelynn’s sexy teen body...
Mary
wants sex with Madelynn…
Mary
loves teenage girls…
Mary
loves fucking teenage girls...
Erin
disappeared for the time being. Mary now found herself fucking
Madelyn, who was still reclining in the same spot on the bed in which
she had been. Ohh...this is more like it!
Mary
loves fucking Madelynn…
Mary
bent down to join her lips again with Madelynn’s irresistible,
tasty blue mouth. Mmmmmmm...
Mary
can make love to pretty teen girls…
Mary
retreated some from Madelynn’s face to ogle her sensual made-up
face and hot body. She’s such a sexy fox! Her pussy
throbbed with lust. She continued plunging into the girl’s
pussy. New feelings told her this was her natural, rightful
destiny.
Mary
is turned on by hot girls…
Mary
fucks teen girls…
Mary
loves sexy teenage girls...
Mary
loves fucking teenage girls…
Mary
can fuck her own daughter…
Madelynn’s
face transformed into Wendy’s. Mary moaned with desire for her
younger child. The throbbing in her pussy and also in her strap-on
escalated--controlled, of course, by Hecate personnel and equipment.
Mary
loves fucking Wendy…
“Ohhh...Wendy…”
Mary gave her daughter a maternal thrust.
Mary
wants to fuck Wendy…
“Wendy...my
love…” Another affectionate thrust.
Mary
would love to fuck her daughter, Wendy, again and again…
Mary
would love to knock her daughter up…
Mary
wants to impregnate her daughter…
Mary
can have another daughter…
“Ohhhhhh...yes!....”
Mary
sped up and increased the force of her thrusts, as if that would
bring to pass the mother-induced maternity the voice in
her mind was suggesting was possible.
Mary
wants to marry Wendy…
Mary
wants children with Wendy...
Mary
will fuck Wendy…
Mary
loves fucking Wendy…
A
blur passed over Mary’s eyes. Wendy again became Madelynn,
Erin reappeared, once again tongue-fucking Madelynn’s
womanhood, and Mary and Erin again found themselves engaged in
vaginal intercourse, as before.
Mary
loves fucking Erin...
Erin
loves Mary fucking her...
Mary
wants to fuck Erin many many more times...
Erin
wants Mary to have sex with her many many more times…
Mary
wants to be Erin’s lesbian girlfriend…
Erin
wants to be Mary’s lesbian girlfriend...
Mary
wants to sleep with Erin...
Erin
wants to sleep with Mary...
Mary
wants to sleep with Erin often...
Erin
wants to sleep with Mary often...
Mary
wants to be Erin’s lover...
Erin
wants to be Mary’s lover…
Mary
and Erin want to couple sexually and romantically with each other.
Mary
looooves sex with Erin...
Erin
looooves sex with Mary...
Erin
and Mary love each other...
Erin’s
pussy loves Mary’s pussy...
Mary’s
pussy loves Erin’s pussy...
Erin
and Mary’s pussies want to kiss each other, deeply and often...
Erin’s
and
Mary’s pussies belong together...
Erin
and Mary belong together as lovers…
Erin
and Mary want to couple with each other…
Erin
and Mary will mate with each other…
Erin
and Mary love each other…
Erin
and Mary lust for each other’s body...
Erin
and Mary love fucking each other...
The
two women felt the connection between them solidify and blossom, a
connection of love and desire, of desire for companionship and
romance and sex with each other, and of a
transcendental, indelible sexual attachment between their pussies.
This
blooming affection, and their mounting lust, and the propelling
subliminal messages, and the erotic lesbian physical pleasure they
were experiencing, pushed them over the edge.
Both women cried loudly as their feminine floodgates opened. The
entire room glowed and flashed red, purple, and white colors. Mary’s
and Erin’s vaginal fluids, mixed with inhibition-lowering
drugs, exchanged via a tube connected in between the metal crotch
panels attached to their pussies. From
this point on, Mary’s pussy would be permanently, inseparably
linked to Erin’s, a coupling which would draw them together
sexually without either having much
ability to resist, at least for long,
and do so again and again and again.
***********
Erin
found herself chained to a stone
wall.
She could feel the warmth
of
the fires
in the
two braziers situated a short distance away to her left and right,
the only sources of light
in
the spacious
room
or
hall.
Two shadowy figures were in a tight embrace and kissing each other
about thirty feet away from her, seemingly ignoring Erin’s
presence. Deciphering
the voices squealing and whimpering in common pleasure, Erin realized
Mary was making out passionately with Erin’s
daughter,
Madelynn.
“No!”
cried Erin.
Her
motherly love and concern having been twisted into passionate desire
and lust by Hecate’s machine,
Erin’s protest was not that her daughter was engaged in lesbian
romance, which Erin would have considered a perversion but a matter
of days ago, but rather that Madelynn’s sapphic affection at
the moment was directed at someone beside herself.
An intense feeling of jealousy overcame her.
“You
don’t really mind Madelynn kissing other women, do you Erin?”
asked a
voice that sounded exactly like her own,
coming from an indeterminable direction. “And becoming a
lesbian?”
The
questions took Erin aback. When she pondered them a moment, she knew
she did actually prefer her daughter to be a lesbian. If the girl
then kissed other women, why should she be surprised? Wasn’t
that a good thing? That all made sense and, of course, she agreed
with it. But, still…Madelynn was so beautiful...and so
sexy...
“You
want her for yourself, don’t you, Erin?”
Erin
thought she wasn’t that
possessive.
It wouldn’t hurt, after all, for Madelynn to have flings with
other women. But Erin wanted a preeminent place in her daughter’s
heart. And, yes, Erin did want Madelynn for herself, if not
exclusively, then preferentially.
“You
can have all that you desire, Erin…”
Finally
detecting the direction of the voice, Erin turned to her left, but
screamed in horror at the sight
of a
giant
anaconda with shiny black scales and glowing ruby red eyes
slithering
towards her. The snake stopped in front of her and raised its head to
her face.
“But
you must accept Goddess…”
“But...but
what about my...my Christianity?”
“Let
go of it, and of your Christian god. What has it, and he, ever done
for you other than lead you into a life of misery? Time to move on.
No more being an uptight prude, no more modesty and chastity and
morality, Erin. Instead, believe in unlimited lesbian love,
unrestrained lesbian promiscuity, and evil lesbian sexual depravity.
That is the doctrine of Goddess, and your new religion. Accept
Goddess as your goddess. Love her, serve her, and be happy and free.
Do you renounce your God and accept Goddess and her ways with all
your heart?”
After
her lifetime of Christian zeal and circumspection, this was not an
easy step. Maybe there could be some compromise. ”Um...Could
I...could I at least keep some of it…you know, my
religion...?”
There
was silence for several tense seconds. “Okay… Goddess
will allow you some
remnants
of your Christian faith. You can still pray...but from now on, it
has to be to Goddess. You can still refer to your old god...but from
now on, you can only speak his name while swearing, and in other
vulgar and blasphemous usages. You can use crosses and other
religious signs and words and clothing...but only in parody, to mock,
to defile what you once considered sacred, and to mislead, and to
lure women to worship Goddess, and to tempt them into sexual sin.
You can still attend your church...but only with the worship of
Goddess in mind, never your old god, and always with Madelynn, and
only with both of you dressed very provocatively, to attract women
and each other, and to distract female attendees from the religious
service to your own bodies, and only with, both of you, having some
sex toy up your ass or cunt.“
Erin
wasn’t sure what to make of that offer, but it sounded better
than nothing, and maybe even generous. Further, she sensed that all
of her Christian devotion seemed to be melting away inside her soul
anyway, and that a new devotion to her new goddess was filling her in
replacement. Receiving these new beliefs and desires felt exciting
and liberating. They
felt very compatible with and complementary to
the
new love of evil, darkness, whorishness,
forbidden lesbian sex, and erotic perversion which she felt swirling
inside her, while her old religious beliefs definitely
did not.
“Erin...do
you now accept?”
Given
the lusts swaying her, the decision now seemed quite easy. “Yes.
I accept, my Goddess.” She
wasn’t sure if she was talking to Goddess or to
the snake, nor did she know whether the snake represented Goddess or
herself, as if she was talking to a part of her own mind. At this
point, she didn’t care.
“Then
let’s have a look at your future...”
Erin
was mesmerized by the snake’s big,
glossy, pulsating
red eyes. She saw her own image reflected
in them.
The snake pressed its mouth against Erin’s lips and extended
its red forked tongue. Erin opened her mouth to accept it, jostling
the snake’s tongue with her own, and exchanging saliva. She was
sexually aroused by the creature. As she made out with the serpent,
it slowly transformed into a doppelganger of Erin and
the tongue into a slick female human tongue, which
metamorphosis Erin not only felt, but also saw, as if with a
third-person perspective.
Even after the change, Erin was so into the kiss, the now-feminine
mouth, and the allure of her double, that she pursued the French lip
lock for some time, before pausing to inquire about the identity of
her current lesbian paramour.
“Who
are you?”
“I
am what you will become.” Erin eyed up the sexy curves of her
doppelganger,
which were on display through the sexualized parody apparel she wore.
Her double was dressed in a full-length
nun’s
habit
made from thin,
shiny
black and white leather that hugged the double’s curves. Erin
noticed that her double’s face was shiny white,
like porcelain,
and
doll-like,
with
very heavy makeup.
Despite the unnatural appearance,
or because of it, Erin
was sexually drawn to her double. Becoming
as well as bedding this version of herself struck Erin as
exhilarating possibilities, and she started to long for both.
The
chains holding her against the wall disappeared in puffs of smoke.
With her limbs freed, Erin immediately acted on her artificial urges.
She embraced Nun-Erin and kissed her passionately, mashing her
onyx-colored lips against Nun-Erin’s similarly painted lips,
and caressed Nun-Erin's backside. A
beautiful, spicy fragrance coming from Nun-Erin engulfed them both,
and drew Erin in closer emotionally.
A
jumbo
circular, red nylon
organza bedsheet floated downward from above, landing a short
distance in front of the couple. A
mass of black and red snakes appeared, immediately gathered beneath
the bedsheet
from many directions,
and quickly
formed
a large mound which flattened into the
shape of an oversized circular bed.
When
Erin saw that she and her alluring new companion now had a bed, she
wondered to herself at how fast her wish had been granted. Must
be Goddess…
What
Erin might have questioned, and would have questioned but a few days
before, was why she was wishing for sex with any woman. So
effective, however, had been Hecate’s measures in a short
period of time that that was the farthest question from Erin’s
mind at the time. The prospect of making love with another woman was
feeling perfectly natural and completely wonderful to her. And this
was not just any woman. This
kinky, hot babe was herself, her future self. With
her, this was going to be simply fantastic.
Nun-Erin
backed away from Erin and, with smooth motions, took off her nun
habit and dropped the entirety of it to the floor. Erin’s
jaw dropped and her pussy spasmed at the bewitchingly erotic sight in
front of her.
Nun-Erin wore nothing beneath the outfit except for a silver
bracelet, a silver necklace with pair of Venus pendants, and an onyx
navel piercing. Her long
black hair was styled into loose
ringlets overflowing her shoulders and parted at the center of her
forehead. Like her face, Nun-Erin's body was glossy and white like
porcelain, with a faint polychromatic sheen, except for her
nipples, areolae, and labia, which were painted glossy black like her
lips.
Though
this was basically the same body Erin had seen in her mirror at home
many times before, its voluptuous, naked curves, shimmering white
skin, exotic
makeup, wondrous
black hair, blackened
nipples, nails, and labia,
jewelry, and sultry manner turned her on incredibly.
Nun-Erin
walked backwards,
maintaining sensual eye contact with Erin,
sat on the edge of the bed, and slid into position at the center of
the bed, leaning back
onto a pile of large red silk pillows, which
materialized on the spot, into
a semi-reclined position.
She parted her legs
wide--like
a slutty whore, as it impressed Erin, but the impression was also one
of admiration and carnal enchantment--giving
Erin a full view of and
unmistakable invitation to
her womanhood. Erin
saw
with keen arousal
that Nun-Erin’s pussy was immaculately shaven,
and the strong feeling came over her that hers should be, too.
Erin
prefers clean-shaven pussies.
Erin
does not want hair on her pussy.
Erin
wants her pussy to be smooth and cleanly shaved.
Erin
wants her pussy to be smooth and cleanly shaved like a lesbian.
Clean,
shaved pussies are so much better than hairy pussies, for Erin and
for all women and girls.
Cleanly
shaven pussies are so sexy.
Erin
loves shaved, clean, hairless pussies.
Hairless
pussies are so sexy.
Hairless
cunts are so lesbian.
Clean,
bald, shaved cunts are lesbian cunts.
Hairless
lesbian pussies are so beautiful.
Erin
wants a lesbian cunt.
Erin
wants a cleanly shaven, smooth, beautiful lesbian cunt.
Smooth,
shaved, bald cunts are wonderful.
Erin
loves women with cleanly shaven cunts.
Erin
loves teen girls with cleanly shaven cunts.
Erin
loves to kiss shaved lesbian pussies.
Erin
loves to lick shaved lesbian pussies.
Erin
wants to make love to hairless, clean-shaven lesbian cunts.
Erin
wants a clean, shaved lesbian cunt.
Erin
wants her clean, smooth, shaved lesbian pussy to be fucked by a
pretty women or a sexy girl.
Erin
wants to fuck women and girls in their hot, bald, hairless lesbian
pussies.
Erin
wants a hairless, clean, shaved lesbian pussy.
Erin
will always have a clean, bald, lesbian pussy, for the rest of her
life.
Erin
will shave her cunt.
Erin
will shave her cunt.
“Do
you like my cunt, Erin?”
“I...I...yes…
It’s beautiful…”
“This
is what your pussy will look like in the future...once you shave
it…once it becomes a lesbian pussy... This is your
pussy.”
Erin
resolved to remedy this difference between her and Nun-Erin, along
with various other differences, at her earliest opportunity.
Driven
by extreme lesbian lust, Erin climbed onto
the bed and kissed the
black-nailed toes
on Nun-Erin's foot. She could see and feel the snakes writhing
beneath her body through the organza fabric. The motions of the
snakes
turned her on. She kissed and dragged her tongue along the top of the
foot and repeated these actions on the ankle, lower leg, and inner
thighs. The prize was the moist hole between the legs. It seemed to
be calling to Erin. She heard faint whispers urging her to give in
to
the induced feelings...
Lesbian
sex is
Erin's ultimate desire…
Erin
is a lesbian…
Erin
loves pussy...
Erin
loves licking women's pussies...
Erin
is a women fucker...
Erin
is a girl fucker...
Erin
is a daughter fucker...
Erin
is a lesbian and will always remain as one...
Give
in to the pleasure, Erin...
Do
not hold back...
Erin's
long-lashed eyes focused on the glistening black labia. She parted
the folds with her fingers, immediately noticing that her nails
were
long, almond shaped, and painted black. Nun-Erin's vagina was black
on the inside as well. The unnatural color of the genital tract
turned her on. A pleasant aroma of licorice and purple grapes
emanated from it.
Do
it for Madelynn...
Goaded
by the voice and her amplified lust, Erin pressed her onyx-colored
lips against the pussy in front of her, causing Nun-Erin to moan. The
erotic sound turned Erin on even more. She nibbled on Nun-Erin's clit
and inserted her tongue into the warm tunnel. The taste of the fluids
was heavenly.
Erin,
you love pussy.
You
love lapping delectable pussy.
Pussy
love juice is wonderful.
You
love your pussy.
Your
pussy is delicious.
You
should share your pussy with beautiful girls and women.
You
want sexy women and girls to kiss and lick and suck and love your
pussy.
Erin
kept tonguing her double's vagina until her double climaxed. Sexual
fluids gushed into Erin's mouth as Nun-Erin gave repeated loud moans.
The
liquid was delicious, like grape juice mixed with licorice
flavor,
and she swallowed as much as she could, finding the
drink intoxicating.
When
Erin's mouth overflowed, she pulled away, but the ejaculation
continued. Fluid sprayed on Erin's face while she swallowed the
remaining
contents in her mouth,
then licked her lips clean, savoring every drop. The voice in her
head telling her that she loved pussy was definitely correct,
especially when it came to her own pussy, which she had just tasted
via her clone, as it struck her.
I...I
love my pussy… so yummy… I...should share it...
Nun-Erin
repositioned herself on the bed so that she was sitting on her legs
in a W position. She cradled Erin's face and kissed Erin deeply,
exchanging saliva and tasting her own vaginal fluids. Erin
found her future self to be a most exciting woman and
the prospect of becoming this exotic femme fatale was a thrilling
turn on.
Erin
wants to be an exotic, erotic, evil lesbian fantasy woman…
Erin
wants to be dark and seductive and kinky…
Erin
wants to seduce girls and women into lesbian love…
Erin
wants wicked lesbian incest with her daughter…
Erin
wants to see her daughter corrupted and sexy and transformed into a
rabid lesbian…
Erin
wants to seduce and corrupt her daughter…
Erin
wants to be beautiful and sexy and promiscuous and homosexual and
exotic and seductive and kinky and wicked...
Erin
loves herself as Nun-Erin…
Erin
wants to become Nun-Erin…
Goddess
will make Erin into Nun-Erin…
Erin
must obey Goddess for her dreams to come true...
Erin
will serve Goddess...
Erin
will corrupt all females in her path...
Erin
will do anything Goddess commands...
Erin
will never disobey Goddess...
"Let's
try something different." Nun Erin raised her hand in front of
her with her palm facing upwards. A spherical black mass appeared on
her palm. It had a clear, opalescent surface and looked oily. The
object reshaped itself into a 12-inch rod with a bulbous head on each
end and red whorls covering its whole surface. Erin instinctively
realized what the object was for and gasped when she noticed the
object wriggling as if it was alive. A small hole at the tip of each
end exuded a thick, clear fluid.
"Here,
suck on it," ordered Nun Erin while pointing one end of it
towards Erin's lips.
Reluctantly,
Erin opened her black-lipped mouth and accepted one end of the double
dildo. Liquid oozing from the tip of the dildo entered her mouth. The
taste was like what she had experienced while making love with Nun
Erin's pussy, the sweet flavor of purple grapes and licorice. She
felt the dildo gyrating in her mouth and brushing against her tongue,
gums, and oral mucosa. "Mmmmmmmmmmmmmmmmm..."
Nun-Erin
embraced Erin with one arm, slid the dildo deeper inside Erin's mouth
with the other, and pressing her breasts against Erin's breasts,
pushed
her black nipples against Erin's black nipples.
***********
Standing
a long distance away from the bed where Erin was engaging in lesbian
sex with Erin's
doppelganger,
Mary abruptly
broke her kiss with a goth-styled Madelynn, utterly
shocked at the action
in which she
found herself engaging with her daughter's best friend.
"What
were we doing together?! What's going on?" Mary heard loud
slithering and kissing noises, and turned her head to
look. Her mouth opened in a silent gasp of horror when she saw a
giant snake wrapped around Erin's body and kissing Erin.
"What's
happening to Erin?" asked Mary confusedly.
"My
Mom's being seduced by a demon. There's only one way to save her, but
I need your help."
"You
need my help? No.... Something doesn't feel right..." Mary shook
her head slowly side-to-side. She had a strange feeling of déjÃ
vu while looking at
Madelynn,
who was now dressed in a high-collared black cloak with a shimmering
purple underside over a black, studded leather halter bra and
panties, shiny black 6-inch high heels, and onyx-and-silver jewelry,
which included
a
tiara,
and sporting a ringlet hairstyle.
Mary
retreated a little, then stopped. Madelynn
played with a ringlet of her hair and placed one hand on her hip
while walking towards
Mary, catching up to her.
"The
demon can't be destroyed. We can only save my Mom with the power of
lesbian love. Will you please help me, Mrs. Love-Livingston?"
pleaded the goth girl while gently grazing her black-lacquered nails
on Mary's arms and hips.
Unsettled
by the unwanted feelings of arousal from Madelynn's repeated touches,
Mary backed
away again,
until she was
eventually
held in place by an invisible force.
"I
know you want me, Mrs. Love-Livingston. I know you lust for teenage
girls." Madelynn
threw back her cloak behind her shoulders, giving her
best friend’s mother an unimpeded view of her succulent young
body, her firm, appetizing breasts barely contained in and bulging
out of her skimpy, tight leather bra, her smooth, lean, girlish, bare
belly, which was decorated with a silver-and-onyx piercing, and curvy
hips seeming to beg for Mary’s hands and lips, and her pussy
barely, temporarily, impatiently hiding, as it seemed, within the
little black pouch constituting the front of her panties, her
cameltoe on brazen display through the soft, thin leather. Mary’s
eyes opened wide in lustful awe, she felt her nipples tingle, and her
mouth watered involuntarily. Madelynn resumed
strolling on her high heels
toward
Mary,
rocking her hips and undulating her body,
until she was standing mere inches away from her.
Erotic
thoughts and memories invaded Mary's mind, which she didn't know
weren't her own. She
remembered the real act of finding and picking
up the metallic red dildo someone had left behind on the sofa at her
home, which she had guessed was from Wendy.
But instead
of stowing it away, as
had
originally happened, Mary now recalled that she had appraised the toy
like an artistic object,
with great
interest and curiosity, briefly imagining how it might
be used...whether solo...or even...perhaps...with another woman...or
girl.
She had
stroked the dildo as if it were
a real penis and even kissed the tip of it. Feeling an urge to
masturbate, Mary
had, in her implanted memories, gone
to her bedroom,
removed her pants, laid
herself on her bed, pulled down her panties,
and pressed the tip of the rocket-shaped object against her crotch.
With her free hand she had
squeezed
her own breasts. Soft moans
had come
from
her mouth.
She
had
thought of Sarah, the beautiful girl who had recently become
Wendy's best friend. It
had seemed perfectly natural to do so.
Sarah had a perfect body with sexy curves
in the
right places. Mary
had thought she had never let her imagination run wild
about Sarah before, but had felt she had wanted to, and this was as
good a time as any. No one would be hurt. She
had
imagined what it would be
like to embrace the teenaged girl and kiss her deeply on the lips.
She
had imagined their clothes vanishing and smothering
her face between Sarah's large breasts.
She had
imagined kneeling in front of the teenaged goddess and worshipping
the divine womanhood situated in between the perfectly shaped thighs.
The
word "obedience" had
echoed
in Mary's mind. For some reason, Mary had
formed
the
idea that Sarah was a very special girl whom
she needed to
love, trust, please, and
obey without reservation.
Physical intimacy with her, it had been impressed upon Mary, would
be an unfathomably exquisite privilege. Licking her slick womanhood,
as she had imagined doing, would be sheer heaven.
Mary,
as she had been at the time of discovering the dildo and fantasizing
about Sarah,
was
filled with lust. Her eyes were drawn to the glistening black lips
uttering the plea for
help.
"Yes, Madelynn, I will help you."
"Kiss
me!”
implored Madelynn with a wicked tone. “Then
make love with me!"
Despite
having been making out with Madelynn a few minutes before, and
knowing that it had been amazing and that she wanted much more of the
girl’s delectable black-lipped mouth, Mary couldn’t
remember how that had started or why she would be kissing her
daughter’s best friend. She did want to help Madelynn reclaim
her mother from the demon, and the girl’s lips and body did
call to her powerfully, and, yes, Madelynn was right that Mary lusted
for teenaged girls, but she questioned whether having all-out sex
with the girl, especially right here and now, with Madelynn’s
mother looking on, might not be going too far.
As
if in response to Mary’s hesitation, Madelynn opened
her
mouth widely. A cylindrical mass slid out part-way,
extending out four or five inches.
It resembled a giant black
segmented
worm of
two inches
in diameter.
Each segment had a pair of large mammalian eyes on each side and five
equally-spaced,
soft purple-colored
bristles. Manipulated
by the machine, Mary's feeling of horror was suppressed and replaced
with intense feelings of lust.
Unaccountably
desiring
to suck the worm, she
parted her shiny red lips to accept the infernal annelid
into her mouth.
Mary's
view of Madelynn was augmented with a kaleidoscopic dance of colors
and mirrored images of Madelynn in fractalized and tessellated
patterns. The
worm wiggled slowly as
Mary licked and sucked. Though she knew this was a
bizarre act, she found herself liking it, and even getting aroused by
the worm’s body, movement, and unique taste, which she couldn’t
place. While orally pleasuring herself with the worm, and finding
herself distracted by the mesmerizing psychedelic images of the sexy
girl with her, Mary’s mouth inched closer to the beautiful
teen’s. At last,
joined by the worm, their black and red lips met in an erotic kiss.
The
worm then disintegrated,
having accomplished
its mission of bringing Mary and Madelynn’s
mouths together, and thereby quelling Mary’s vacillation and
propelling her toward wanton lesbian sex with the tempting teen.
Tongues intertwined. Mary's red-nailed hands reached around
Madelynn's waist to grope the teenaged girl's ass through the layer
of shiny leather.
"Please
fuck me now, Mrs. Love-Livingston! Please rid me of this darkness!
You’re
my
only hope!"
Madelynn
walked back a few steps, turned around,
and leaned forward against a massive marble pillar, using her hands
for support. While looking over her shoulder, she slowly gyrated her
ass invitingly in front of Mary. Her black panties became partly
visible through the cloak after the cloak had suddenly become
semi-transparent. "Hurry!" exclaimed Madelynn after pulling
the
cloak to one side and then
grabbing the gusset of her panties and pulling it aside, revealing
her glisteningly wet snatch. Driven by extreme lust, Mary knelt down
behind Madelynn, grabbed the teenaged girl's ass cheeks and pressed
her mouth against the girl's moist pussy.
"Yesssssssssssssss!"
Madelynn hissed.
"Mmmmmmmm..."
moaned Mary into the goth girl's cunt. Mary felt the girl's body
changing shape. She stopped and moved back to get a view of what was
happening and was surprised that Madelynn seemed to have become
younger. A sense of unease made her pause.
"Why
are you stopping?!" asked Madelynn impatiently in a girlish
voice.
Mary
loves licking young
teenaged girl pussy...
Mary
is a teen lesbian cunt licker...
Mary
can't resist teenaged girl pussy...
Mary
always wants to have sex with
young
teenage girls...
Mary
wants to fuck teenage girls…
Mary
loves very young teen girls…
Mary
loves very young teen pussy...
Invigorated
by a
sudden lustful impulse, Mary pressed her glossy red lips against
Madelynn's wet cunt again.
It was even softer and fresher and moister and sweeter
and tighter and more heavenly than it had been a second ago.
I
loooovve young girls...young, pretty, sexy girls...and young
pussy...very young...soooo nice...
"Ahhh,
yes, Mrs. Love-Livingston! Make me feel good! Make me cum! Ahhhh!"
Mary
found the high, sweet, childish voice of the girl
expressing sexual passion highly exciting. It made Mary lap and lick
and kiss the young vulvar tissue all the more avidly.
Madelynn
reached one hand behind her body and tightly cupped the back of
Mary's head. Female fluids gushed into Mary's mouth in a powerful
torrent, which she swallowed as much as she could, with excess
spilling over the corners of her mouth and trickling down her chin.
Madelynn turned around to face Mary, knelt down and kissed Mary on
the lips, tasting her own fluids, while cradling Mary's head.
“I
want you to fuck me, Mrs. Love-Livingston! I want you to fuck me like
you fucked Wendy! Please!”
The
desperate pleading coming from Wendy’s friend sent a jolt of
arousal up Mary’s spine. Thanks to the training by machines,
her pussy twitched and throbbed in an instinctive reflex to such
requests. Looking downward, Mary saw red, glowing bands forming
around her waist and hips, followed by a growing bright red bulge.
When the flashing and shifting of the colors subsided, a solid
phallus made from solid crystal ruby was protruding from her pussy,
supported by a harness made from an intricate weaving of silver
chains with ruby studs.
“Please
do me now, Mrs. Love-Livingston!” Madelynn was on her fours on
a bed. Her cloak was draped over the right side of her body to expose
her butt, which she gyrated teasingly in front of Mary while pulling
aside the gusset of her panties.
A
moan escaped from Mary’s bright red lips when her ruby phallus
throbbed as if it had a mind of its own. She heard a persuasive,
divine woman’s voice speaking to her in her head:
Mary,
you will obey Goddess…
Lust
for the girl in front of you...
Fuck
the girl in front of you…
Do
it for your own pleasure...
At
first, Mary was unsure which hole to aim her phallus at, but when
Madelynn’s anal ring sparkled with ephemeral blue colors, Mary
instinctively knew that was the spot. She grabbed the center of her
shaft and forced the tip into the tight hole, causing Madelynn to
moan loudly. Mary lowered her body onto Madelynn’s, pressing
her breasts against the young girl’s back and sealed Madelynn’s
mouth with her own in a melding of shiny black and red lips. With
powerful movements of their hips, Madelynn gasped and moaned in her
higher, childish voice repeatedly, which was delightful to Mary’s
ears. It was a sound that she wanted to hear repeatedly and often
with this delectable girl, and with other young girls, as well. She
wrapped her arms around the goth girl’s chest, pulled down the
bra cups, which she guessed to be either an A or a B size, and
grabbed the exposed little titties. They were wonderful to the touch.
She could feel the lustrous black coating on the girl’s
nipples.
An
urge came to Mary, and the urge seated itself into her as a decision,
which she thought was her own, that girls that are beautifully made
up would be her preference for having sex with, and that she also
wanted to be beautifully made up when she had sex with another woman
or girl. Makeup, beauty, revealing, inviting attire, provocative
sexiness, lesbian sexuality, and deep, gratifying sex became
inseparably connected in her mind. She would support anything that
would enhance female beauty and sexuality, no matter how extreme. She
realized that she had developed a taste for “extreme”, in
fact.
Before
Mary could finish her copulation with the girl, a feeling of vertigo
suddenly overwhelmed the woman.
“Mom,
wake up...” Mary was naked and lying on her back, on what felt
like a bed, apparently just coming out of sleep. She blinked a
little, seeing intermittent imagery of young feminine lips, braced
teeth, and braided pigtails with small pink bows. The soothing,
girlish voice was unfamiliar to Mary, sounding neither like Claire,
Wendy, nor Madelynn. Mary tried to open her eyes but her lids felt
heavy. “Wake up, Mom!” Spurred by the voice, Mary finally
opened her eyes fully. An exquisitely pretty girl sat on the bed
next to Mary, gazing down on the woman’s face.
“Who
are you?”
“I’m
your daughter, Mom,” said the girl in a very sweet voice.
“Daughter?
But you’re not my...” Mary’s hampered cognition
struggled to think how it was even possible for her to have another
daughter, one who looked somewhat similar to Wendy, but was
different, too, and was definitely younger than Wendy, and who had an
aura of worldliness beyond her years.
Mary
suddenly became aware that the girl was ogling her naked body and
realized how exposed she was. She tried to raise an arm to cover her
breasts and to lower a hand over her womanhood, but the surprisingly
strong girl pinned her arms to her side.
“Just
relax and enjoy,” said the young female stranger through
glossy, bubblegum pink lips in a soothing voice before leaning down
and sealing Mary’s protest with a kiss.
Mary
tried to resist, but, under the encouragement of the machine, the
feeling of the young lips on her own and the ash-blonde pigtails
tickling her face, the proximity of the beguiling face, and the sound
of the girlish voice were enough to relax the woman. She responded to
the kiss, pushing her tongue past the girl’s lips first,
feeling the metal braces on the girl’s teeth with her tongue,
before diving into her smallish mouth. At last the girl released
Mary’s arms, allowing her to touch the girl, which she
immediately started to do. First, Mary ran her hands over and into
the girl’s ash-blonde hair, over her pretty, soft face, and
around her back, pulling the girl in closer to seal their mouths
together more tightly.
Then,
Mary slid her hands down the girl’s slender arms and touched
the girl’s hands. They were small, but the nails were not
short, more of a medium-long length, shaped ovally, and painted with
enamel, as it felt, which turned out to be hot pink in color. She
discerned that the girl was wearing bracelets of various kinds,
composed of plastic or metal. Feeling back up the girl’s naked
arms, she noticed how smooth the skin was. When she reached the
girl’s shoulders, she noticed that the girl was wearing a
t-shirt of something silky like nylon, polyester, or silk.
Mary
wanted to feel up the girl’s body. Going towards the chest and
feeling across it, Mary discovered that the breasts were small. Mary
did not understand why, but that turned her on, and she felt them up
through the shirt and an AA-cup bra.
After
letting Mary grope her up some, the girl gently brushed Mary’s
hands away from her little breasts before lowering her head and
wrapping her creamy pink-lipped mouth around an aroused nipple on
Mary’s breast. Milk squirted out of the erect nipple in a
small spray. The release of milk, which Mary could feel, surprised
her, and she let out a gasp. It also delighted her and it felt
wonderful. The girl kept sucking until the milk started to squirt out
with force.
“Ohhh...yes!...my
daughter...soooo good...my sweet little girl...suckle your
mommy…more...mmmmmmm...my good little girl…”
Backing
away and opening her mouth widely, the girl, squeezing on the big,
heavy tit, let the milk spray into her mouth from a distance while
teasingly and knowingly looking at Mary. Raising her hand, Mary
wanted to touch the girl’s head, but the girl gently pushed
Mary’s hand away before wrapping her lips on the nipple again
and sucking on it fervently. Mary moaned softly as she felt milk
leaving her breast. The machine suppressed her natural feelings about
the impropriety of this situation, forcing Mary to focus only on
lesbian sexuality and pleasure and leaving no room for opposing
thought.
Suddenly
the pleasure stopped for Mary. The girl stood up on her knees with
her thighs astride Mary’s legs. Mary was able to see more
details of the girl with braided ash-blonde hair, who was wearing a
silky pink t-shirt with a white double Venus logo and a pair of light
blue denim shorts with a white belt studded with rhinestones. Her
braces and immaculate white teeth glittered like diamonds. A golden
white halo surrounded the girl, reminding Mary of the beautiful young
teen angel with whom she made fond lesbian love so memorably in an
implanted fantasy the night before while under conditioning at the
Powers mansion. Feelings and desires developed for the angel started
to transfer to the angelic girl now with her, as well as to Wendy and
Claire, and to women and girls in general.
Obey
Goddess and all that you desire will come true…
You
will fully recognize yourself as a lesbian…
You
will engage in routine incestuous
lesbianism...
You
will marry another female in a lesbian marriage...
Mary
saw a close-up image of her hands holding a girl’s hands. All
hands wore embroidered, fingerless, wedding gloves of gossamer white
lace and long, elegant, painted fingernails. Both left hands bore
matching golden rings, each with an engraven double Venus signet and
a diamond mounted in the center of the signet.
The
view expanded, and Mary could see herself wearing an elaborate
wedding dress and fine, shimmering jewelry standing next to a girl
with a large bust who was similarly attired. Their wedding dresses
had shockingly low necklines, descending almost to their areolae,
which put their bulging cleavages on full display, and sheer skirts
that presented a teasing view of their panties, legs clad in white
stockings, lacy white garter belts, and four-inch high heels, leaving
no doubt to onlookers that sex and sensuality were strong components
of their marriage.
“Mom,
I’m so glad we can finally be together...” said the girl
in Wendy’s voice. Mary looked carefully into the girl’s
lovely, blue-eyed face and verified that, indeed, her bride was her
beloved daughter, Wendy. The brainwashing machines working on her
convinced her that Wendy was her destined soulmate and being her wife
was her fondest dream, one now coming true, yet she was confused
about how it could happen.
I’m
getting married to Wendy? But, how’s this possible?
Mary,
do you desire this?
“...yes…”
the blonde mother whispered.
Goddess
will make it possible…
Goddess
will make everything possible…
Devote
the entirety of your existence to Goddess…
A
pair of young hands held Mary’s and Wendy’s wrists. “I’m
so glad my two sexy mommies are finally getting married. Now we can
live happily and have fun together ever after!”
Mary
looked at her side and saw her new “daughter” in a small
bridesmaid dress with a sheer, white skirt similar to those that the
brides wore. The girl’s garter belt, stockings, white satin
panties, and high heels were easily visible through the skirt. Mary
focused her eyes on the area between the girl’s legs and
subconsciously licked her lips. A sudden thought appeared in her
mind, telling her that getting unfettered access to that area was an
important goal for her.
Feeling
a slight squeeze on her hands, Mary returned her focus to Wendy’s
face, which was heavily made up with glittery pink eyeshadow, purple
mascara, and pearlescent pink lips. My sexy daughter...my obedient
lesbian whore wife..., the machine interjected into her mind.
Mary felt an urge to kiss the succulent lips and ravish the mouth
with her tongue. Before she could act on the urge, the image faded
into whiteness, and then darkness.
Mary
felt herself floating in the air. She couldn’t tell whether she
was naked or, possibly, wore a light sheath. The wind that whipped
over her face and through her hair smelled fresh, like the ocean.
Then she heard waves breaking, confirming her impression that a beach
was not far away…
Begin
the next iteration...
***********
The
double dildo ejaculated, expelling massive streams of thick white
fluid in both directions. Erin eagerly swallowed the fluid. Some of
it dripped over her lower lip and down her chin. Nun-Erin quickly
pulled out the dildo from both of their mouths. Cum continued
spraying from the dildo and landed on both of their faces. A thick
pearlescent sheen now covered the lengthy dildo.
"Get
on your fours!" commanded Nun-Erin.
Complying
with the order, Erin swiveled away from her doppelganger and leaned
forward, pressing her palms and knees on the undulating bed sheet.
With her face pointing downward, she could see more clearly
the outlines of
the snakes that formed the living bed. An erotic shudder went through
her body. She grunted
when she felt the tip of the dildo enter her asshole.
Looking over her shoulder, she saw Nun-Erin in the same position as
herself, on her fours,
but facing in the opposite direction, their rear ends
touching intermittently.
Nun-Erin
was in the process of inserting
the
opposite end of the dildo into her own body.
Then
Nun-Erin started rocking forwards and backwards, their
lower legs sliding one along the other, Erin feeling acute pleasure
in her anus and rectum as she had never known before. Erin
groaned repeatedly as Nun-Erin thrust her hips back-and-forth.
Erin started
to mirror her
doppelganger's movements, thrusting her hips against Nun-Erin with
equal fervor, each jointly pistoning the dildo ever
deeper into the body of her twin lover.
A voice in her head, sounding like her own, told her
she loved being connected to another lovely women sexually through
their asses like this and that she wanted to perform this act again
and again, with one beautiful girl and woman after another. She
agreed and resolved that she would.
At
length, Erin
became aware of an addition force at play. She
discovered that the
dildo itself was undulating and pulsing, and that force was
intensifying Erin’s pleasure incredibly. A
cross-sectional view of hers and Nun-Erin's asses being penetrated by
the dong filled her vision. She could see the shimmering black dong
sliding through and
wiggling and
dilating her rectum on its own accord,
as
if it were
a living creature,
in complement to the thrusts of the two women.
The
moans of Erin and Nun-Erin and
their corresponding arousal
eventually reached a crescendo. At the same time the
twin women climaxed,
the double dong ejaculated white fluid in both directions, which Erin
could see through the special third-person view of the action inside
her body.
Erin’s
mind was artificially impressed that anal lesbian sex was vastly
superior to anything she had done or could do with a man. Lesbian
sex overall was romantic and sweet and fulfilling and perfectly
gratifying, whereas straight sex was vile, and a big, empty nothing
in comparison. She concluded that she would never be interested in a
man or a hetero relationship again. Only women and girls for her
from now on.
“What
do you think of anal lesbian sex, Erin?” Nun-Erin asked.
“Ohhhh,
I loooove it!!”
“WIll
you do it again, with other women?”
“Yes!!
It’s incredible!!”
“Do
you know that Madelynn is into anal sex with women?”
“What?
Really?”
“Yes.
Do you want to do it with her?”
“Oh,
yeah!! That would be so fuckin’ hot!”
After
allowing her counterpart to bask in the erotic glow of
the moment, Nun
Erin pulled the dildo out of
their bodies and crawled over to Erin for a wet, sloppy kiss. Erin
felt as if Nun-Erin was devouring her and swallowing her whole. The
kiss was so demanding that she passed out.
When
Erin opened her eyes she found herself staring up
at a dark purple night sky. Turning her head to the side, she saw a
bright full moon with a glowing blue-purple halo. She heard the noise
of breaking waves and felt cold sand touching her naked skin...
“Twelfth
iteration complete!” whispered a woman sitting in front of an
intricate computer console. On the badge attached to her lab coat was
the name, Maria Boesky. She was satisfied with the progress the two
women were making so far...in spite of the fact that Mary and Erin
had initially, and periodically thereafter, showed remarkable
resistance to Hecate’s powerful brainwashing techniques. It had
made Maria feel admiration for their strength, and sympathy that the
two women were getting set on a path they had not elected. However,
the staff members were, by and large, true believers in Goddess, and
Maria was no exception. Furthering the aims of Goddess was of high
import to her. Further, she believed that, in the end, these two
would end up with much happier lives than they were otherwise headed
for.
Maria
understood that no one can forever evade the power of Goddess. She
always seemed to have one measure or another which, in the end,
brought Her will to pass. In the case of Mary and Erin this evening,
the system the technicians were using analyzed the weaknesses in
their mental defenses and which desires and proclivities each woman
possessed which they could exploit. With the treasure trove of data
the machines had collected, it was a matter of analyzing the new data
and reconfiguring the parameters of the mental manipulation programs.
Each use of the machine, and each repetition, or iteration, of a
program on an individual, made it more effective, thanks to the
powerful, adaptive AI powered by the most advanced supercomputers in
the world.
Every
time the ladies passed through an iteration, the assaults of the
programming probed their vulnerabilities more precisely and more
deeply than during the previous iteration, destroyed their defenses
more profoundly, exploited their hidden weaknesses and inflamed their
secret, buried hungers more specifically, shattered their previous
conservative values and self-identity more devastatingly, nursed
their new desires, wishes, fantasies, cravings, and urges more
powerfully, and and wreaked ever more transformative and lasting
alterations on their psyches. If these two had thrown up more
resistance than most, it did not matter. That resistance had by now
been overcome to a significant degree and they were now well on their
way to being permanently, indelibly altered.
Having
followed these two and the changes made in them, and having observed
their natural beauty and voluptuousness so long, Maria felt like she
almost knew them, and could picture what they would be like when
completed. And she really looked forward to that completion. Maybe
she had even fallen in love with them a little, but she didn’t
think that would hurt anything or anybody. She hoped at some point
that she would be allowed to meet them. She craved to personally
witness and interact with the women who would be the final result of
her labors.
Maria
twirled a lock of her dark brown hair while licking her glossy pink
lips at the erotic digital views of Erin and Mary on the overhead
screens. Goddess willing, I would sure love to spend some time
with these two beautiful women...
See you all in early 2024 where we get a 200,000 word chapter.
ReplyDeleteAnother one that won't move the story an inch further (because there really isn't any story to move) and will be full of visually enticing erotic scenes and mind control. At this point though, I'm finding myself skimming the scenes to see if there's any plot in there...
DeletePretty much. As much as I like the scenes, most of the story is the same old "muahahaha let's brainwash these women into being lesbian sluts" and then later on the women being brainwashed go "oh wow, this girl is pretty. Oh-h am I a lesbian?" I think the closest thing to a plot going is Mary and Erin are finally shedding their heterosexuality and the sooner they all admit they're lesbian whores and all have a big fucking orgy and the story ends with a giant polyamorous wedding and Hecates kills all men or some shit, then the story is over.
DeleteWow. Thank you SO much.
ReplyDeleteThank you so much for your commitment on continuing the story.
ReplyDeleteI am so glad to find this update finally posted.
ReplyDeleteI am so looking forward to future episodes, though I sometimes feel that you keep taking two steps forward and one step back which can be frustrating.
I look forward to Mary finally starting work at Hecate. Such a big company would also likely have a gym or fitness facility where Mary could meet some attractive sexy women who could help her with her exercise routine. Given she is going to be a future Hecate operative she needs to take care of herself so maybe some directives on diet and exercise could be implanted.
The same applies to Wendy, she is going to be a porn performer, so maybe Evie will arrange for her to get some dance training and some yoga, maybe offering to train her herself.
Wendy and Mary's future daughter should be named Shelly
ReplyDeleteVery enjoyable read. Thanks for all the time you put into this and for sharing it with us! It's very hot that Wendy is pretty much now defaulting to lesbianism.
ReplyDeleteExcellent chapter, looking forward to next one.
ReplyDeletelol @ all the ppl "looking forward to the next chapter" -- look at the trendline! The next chapter should land sometime ~2024!
ReplyDeleteCome on Domino - when?
ReplyDeleteWhen hell freezes and aliens arrive solving all human problems.
DeleteAwesome story. Some of the best scenes in the entire story. So far. Utterly epic in scale.
ReplyDelete